Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n authority_n believe_v infallibility_n 2,951 5 11.3667 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A60334 True Catholic and apostolic faith maintain'd in the Church of England by Andrew Sall ... ; being a reply to several books published under the names of J.E., N.N. and J.S. against his declaration for the Church of England, and against the motives for his separation from the Roman Church, declared in a printed sermon which he preached in Dublin. Sall, Andrew, 1612-1682. 1676 (1676) Wing S394A; ESTC R22953 236,538 476

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

true_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o andrew_n sall_n doctor_n in_o divinity_n be_v a_o reply_n to_o several_a book_n publish_v under_o the_o name_n of_o j.e._n n.n._n and_o j.s._n against_o his_o declaration_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o against_o the_o motive_n for_o his_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n declare_v in_o a_o print_a sermon_n which_o he_o preach_v in_o dublin_n psal_n 27._o v._n 1._o one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o inquire_v in_o his_o temple_n print_a at_o the_o theatre_n in_o oxford_n 1676._o imprimatur_fw-la rad._n bathur_v vicecan_a oxon._n june_n 23._o 1676._o to_o his_o excellency_n the_o most_o honourable_a arthur_n earl_n of_o essex_n viscount_n malden_n baron_n capel_n of_o hadham_n lord_n lieutenant_n general_n and_o general_a governor_n of_o his_o majesty_n kingdom_n of_o ireland_n lord_n lieutenant_n of_o the_o county_n of_o hertford_n and_o one_o of_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o majesty_n most_o honourable_a privy_a council_n my_o lord_n here_o i_o present_v to_o your_o excellency_n a_o defence_n of_o the_o true_a primitive_a and_o catholic_a apostolic_a faith_n maintain_v and_o profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o the_o assault_n of_o adversary_n so_o bold_a ●s_n to_o present_v the_o venem_fw-la they_o spit_v against_o it_o one_o of_o they_o to_o a_o most_o illustrious_a person_n of_o the_o court_n of_o england_n another_z to_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o people_n and_o a_o three_o to_o your_o excellency_n representative_a of_o our_o gracious_a sovereign_n in_o ireland_n this_o last_o in_o a_o mockery_n like_o that_o of_o judas_n betray_v our_o saviour_n with_o a_o kiss_n while_o he_o endeavour_v to_o bereave_v your_o excellency_n of_o the_o life_n of_o your_o soul_n tell_v you_o that_o 304._o that_o i._o s._n pag._n 140._o and_o 304._o the_o church_n of_o england_n your_o mother_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o no_o saint_n which_o be_v to_o say_v no_o just_a man_n or_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o of_o it_o that_o you_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o your_o tenet_n with_o other_o like_o most_o insolent_a opprobry_n he_o style_v himself_o your_o excellency_n most_o humble_a and_o faithful_a servant_n he_o will_v have_v your_o excellency_n burn_v the_o defender_n of_o your_o church_n for_o offer_v to_o deny_v that_o we_o be_v all_o confess_o schismatic_n when_o our_o adversary_n be_v so_o bold_a and_o active_a it_o be_v much_o our_o concern_n to_o watch_v and_o stand_v on_o our_o guard_n i_o shall_v prove_v undeserving_a the_o gracious_a protection_n and_o favour_n i_o have_v from_o your_o excellency_n enable_v i_o to_o appear_v for_o truth_n if_o in_o this_o exigency_n i_o do_v desert_n the_o defence_n of_o it_o i_o will_v therefore_o b●_n god_n holy_a assistance_n betake_v i_o to_o the_o arm_n o●_n his_o holy_a word_n to_o resist_v the_o insult_a and_o detect_v the_o fraud_n of_o subtle_a and_o violent_a adversary_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n appear_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o defender_n of_o it_o and_o endeavour_n to_o show_v with_o unfeigned_a plain_a and_o solid_a proof_n that_o the_o faith_n we_o profess_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n in_o which_o many_o other_o illustrious_a nation_n join_v with_o we_o be_v the_o true_a primitive_a catholic_n apostolic_a faith_n which_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n and_o his_o sacred_a apostle_n teach_v and_o establish_v on_o earth_n that_o our_o adversary_n brand_a we_o with_o heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v themselves_o the_o prime_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o schism_n and_o confusion_n which_o too_o long_o have_v vex_v christianity_n and_o be_v guilty_a of_o as_o many_o heresy_n as_o article_n coin_v by_o they_o in_o after_o age_n which_o i_o hope_v we_o shall_v prove_v to_o be_v opposite_a both_o to_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n in_o which_o opposition_n certain_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o heresy_n do_v consist_v however_o they_o to_o their_o own_o advantage_n will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n and_o decree_n must_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o and_o nothing_o heresy_n but_o what_o be_v opposite_a to_o they_o his_o pretend_a infallibility_n supremacy_n vice-godship_n and_o such_o like_a big_a sound_a title_n but_o emty_n as_o here_o will_v appear_v have_v fright_v a_o great_a part_n of_o man_n to_o become_v slave_n unto_o he_o the_o invention_n of_o purgatory_n indulgence_n remission_n and_o other_o engine_n of_o lucre_n have_v increase_v his_o mean_n to_o maintain_v his_o usurp_a power_n my_o work_n will_v be_v to_o show_v with_o plainess_n of_o reason_n suitable_a to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o intention_n and_o apposite_a to_o overthrow_v their_o sophistry_n that_o the_o foremention_v tenet_n of_o the_o romish_a faction_n fuel_n of_o all_o the_o combustion_n of_o christendom_n be_v not_o from_o above_o convey_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o conceive_v in_o the_o mint_n of_o earthly_a passion_n for_o the_o wisdom_n that_o be_v from_o above_o be_v first_o pure_a then_o peaceable_a gentle_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v full_a of_o mercy_n and_o good_a fruit_n without_o partiality_n and_o without_o hypocrisy_n jam._n 3.17_o such_o be_v not_o the_o wisdom_n teach_v by_o the_o roman_a court_n or_o church_n if_o they_o will_v have_v it_o so_o call_v it_o be_v not_o pure_a but_o corrupt_v with_o many_o pernicious_a error_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o this_o treatise_n it_o be_v not_o peaceable_a but_o contentious_a not_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v but_o obstinate_a against_o all_o reasonable_a overture_n of_o peace_n against_o the_o continual_a and_o ardent_a desire_n of_o all_o good_a christian_n for_o a_o council_n true_o ecumenical_a and_o free_a wherein_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o faction_n as_o other_o may_v sit_v with_o like_a freedom_n and_o indifferency_n to_o judge_n and_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o ●ord_n of_o god_n and_o rule_n of_o christian_a sincerity_n as_o practise_v in_o those_o pure_a age_n of_o primitive_a christianity_n nothing_o will_v satisfy_v they_o but_o a_o blind_a obedience_n and_o entire_a submission_n to_o their_o will_n far_o be_v they_o from_o be_v full_a of_o mercy_n their_o thought_n be_v not_o of_o peace_n but_o of_o death_n and_o destruction_n to_o all_o their_o fellow_n christian_n that_o will_v not_o be_v of_o their_o party_n all_o this_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v by_o a_o close_a and_o serious_a examen_fw-la of_o the_o particular_n conduce_v to_o the_o discovery_n thereof_o with_o no_o other_o design_n then_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n with_o no_o prejudice_n or_o passion_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o with_o a_o hearty_a desire_n of_o the_o happiness_n of_o it_o that_o set_v aside_o all_o profane_a policy_n it_o may_v return_v to_o that_o primitive_a purity_n and_o lustre_n it_o have_v when_o the_o faith_n of_o it_o be_v praise_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 1.8_o and_o so_o join_v heart_n and_o hand_n with_o other_o christian_n to_o the_o edification_n and_o thereby_o to_o to_o the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n and_o to_o the_o increase_n and_o splendour_n of_o christianity_n this_o be_v my_o real_a intention_n as_o well_o as_o the_o hearty_a wish_n of_o all_o good_a man_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n sure_o i_o be_o that_o my_o study_n and_o endeavour_n to_o this_o end_n will_v be_v protect_v and_o countenance_v by_o your_o excellency_n who_o happiness_n eternal_a and_o temporal_a be_v the_o hearty_a and_o continual_a prayer_n of_o your_o excellency_n most_o devote_v servant_n and_o chaplain_n andrew_n sall_n the_o preface_n saint_n john_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o the_o world_n lie_v in_o wickedness_n 1_o jo._n c._n 5._o v._n 19_o that_o hatred_n envy_n malice_n avarice_n and_o ambition_n be_v the_o most_o common_a practise_n of_o man_n if_o so_o who_o can_v expect_v a_o general_a applause_n of_o his_o action_n expose_v to_o public_a view_n what_o ●eed_v tho_o in_o itself_o just_a and_o commendable_a do_v ever_o ●●ease_v a_o bitter_a enemy_n what_o elegancy_n of_o speech_n what_o strength_n of_o reason_n can_v ever_o sound_v well_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o ●im_n who_o cause_n they_o oppose_v and_o if_o envy_n reign●●th_v can_v that_o black_a passion_n ever_o omit_v to_o lessen_v ●he_v credit_n of_o such_o as_o be_v applaud_v but_o if_o other_o pretend_v to_o be_v wit_n now_o call_v so_o it_o be_v not_o for_o they_o ●o_o let_v any_o action_n pass_v without_o a_o censure_n or_o without_o ●inding_v in_o it_o a_o
the_o erroneous_a principle_n they_o profess_v have_v suck_v they_o in_o their_o tender_a year_n as_o divine_a verity_n proceed_v from_o a_o live_v repute_v infallible_a authority_n they_o never_o hear_v they_o control_v or_o examine_v no_o book_n write_v against_o they_o be_v permit_v to_o come_v in_o their_o sight_n they_o be_v teach_v it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o tenet_n ergo_fw-la those_o man_n want_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o instruction_n and_o consequent_o may_v have_v the_o refuge_n of_o invincible_a ignorance_n all_o this_o i_o know_v to_o be_v so_o by_o my_o own_o experience_n have_v live_v in_o spain_n many_o year_n and_o have_v have_v for_o several_a of_o they_o licence_n from_o the_o inquisitor_n general_a to_o read_v all_o manner_n of_o prohibit_v book_n the_o prohibition_n be_v so_o severe_a that_o i_o can_v never_o find_v one_o book_n of_o a_o protestant_n to_o read_v and_o even_o in_o ireland_n where_o more_o liberty_n may_v be_v expect_v there_o be_v a_o severe_a prohibition_n of_o read_v book_n oppose_v the_o romish_a tenet_n which_o appear_v particular_o touch_v that_o small_a book_n i_o publish_v for_o offer_v it_o to_o be_v read_v by_o a_o romish_a priest_n vicar_n general_n of_o a_o famous_a church_n in_o that_o kingdom_n that_o he_o may_v see_v i_o do_v not_o without_o consideration_n and_o reason_n what_o i_o do_v he_o desire_v to_o be_v excuse_v from_o read_v it_o fear_v it_o will_v raise_v in_o he_o doubt_n which_o he_o can_v not_o solve_v and_o this_o injunction_n be_v so_o severe_a upon_o person_n of_o that_o degree_n must_v be_v more_o indispensable_a upon_o the_o vulgar_a mean_n of_o instruction_n for_o know_v their_o error_n be_v thus_o careful_o prohibit_v to_o they_o of_o the_o romish_a communion_n in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n we_o may_v favourable_o conceive_v that_o many_o of_o they_o both_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a may_v have_v the_o excuse_n of_o invincible_a ignorance_n the_o sin_n lie_v upon_o the_o statist_n that_o for_o temporal_a end_n do_v debar_v they_o from_o the_o mean_n of_o healthful_a knowledge_n one_o touch_n more_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o learned_a very_o many_o of_o they_o have_v bestow_v the_o flower_n of_o their_o age_n in_o study_n of_o humanity_n philosophy_n and_o divinity_n speculative_a be_v take_v up_o and_o often_o keep_v all_o their_o life_n time_n teach_v those_o faculty_n without_o ever_o reflect_v upon_o or_o have_v mean_n to_o know_v the_o error_n of_o their_o church_n in_o the_o point_v controvert_v they_o take_v they_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o instructor_n for_o infallible_a verity_n be_v continual_o beat_v into_o their_o ear_n with_o horror_n and_o execration_n against_o the_o opposite_a doctrine_n and_o how_o great_a the_o power_n of_o education_n and_o prejudice_n be_v let_v the_o dominican_n and_o jesuit_n testify_v how_o fierce_a and_o eager_o do_v each_o one_o act_n and_o opine_n for_o the_o school_n he_o be_v educate_v in_o and_o against_o the_o opposite_a by_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o vain_a the_o triumph_n of_o i._n s._n be_v as_o if_o in_o my_o opinion_n all_o learned_a man_n die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v damn_v to_o hell_n we_o have_v see_v that_o impious_a sentence_n to_o be_v a_o product_n of_o his_o fancy_n no_o consequence_n of_o any_o doctrine_n of_o i_o more_o rash_a and_o wicked_a be_v his_o attemt_a in_o cast_v the_o like_a sentence_n of_o damnation_n upon_o those_o glorious_a saint_n and_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n st._n augustin_n st._n jerome_n st_o chrysostom_n what_o have_v they_o to_o do_v with_o his_o error_n to_o be_v damn_v for_o they_o strong_a opposer_n no_o patron_n of_o they_o be_v they_o as_o partly_o i_o have_v already_o and_o after_o will_v more_o full_o declare_v it_o appear_v likewise_o by_o this_o discourse_n how_o ridiculous_a his_o charge_n upon_o i_o be_v of_o contradiction_n and_o speak_v against_o my_o conscience_n in_o calling_n thomas_n aquinas_n a_o saint_n i_o have_v declare_v how_o that_o do_v consist_v with_o and_o contradict_v not_o what_o i_o have_v deliver_v touch_v the_o unsecurity_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o pretend_v to_o render_v i_o guilty_a in_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o english_a inquisition_n for_o calling_n aquinas_n a_o saint_n but_o the_o inquisition_n of_o england_n be_v not_o so_o rude_a as_o that_o of_o rome_n in_o deny_v common_a civility_n to_o man_n and_o the_o honorary_a title_n custom_n do_v allow_v they_o he_o may_v as_o well_o accuse_v the_o compiler_n of_o the_o london_n gazette_n for_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o title_n of_o holiness_n and_o will_v have_v as_o much_o thanks_o for_o it_o as_o for_o his_o present_a impeachment_n of_o i_o for_o calling_n aquinas_n a_o saint_n we_o do_v not_o take_v it_o for_o a_o certain_a proof_n of_o holiness_n to_o be_v canonize_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n many_o of_o their_o own_o more_o learned_a writer_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v unerreable_a therein_o it_o be_v not_o merit_v only_o get_v that_o honour_n there_o and_o though_o we_o know_v all_o this_o to_o be_v so_o we_o do_v not_o grudge_n to_o call_v those_o saint_n we_o find_v by_o custom_n to_o be_v call_v so_o and_o by_o all_o that_o be_v say_v hitherto_o we_o may_v see_v and_o wonder_v how_o rare_a the_o boldness_n of_o this_o man_n be_v to_o term_v it_o blasphemy_n in_o i_o to_o relate_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o learned_a protestant_n or_o to_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o to_o propose_v to_o have_v we_o all_o burn_v for_o it_o by_o sentence_n of_o our_o own_o chief_a governor_n to_o pretend_v for_o this_o wicked_a attemt_fw-mi the_o authority_n of_o our_o sovereign_a king_n james_n of_o glorious_a memory_n who_o decree_n and_o sentiment_n herein_o i_o do_v most_o willing_o obey_v and_o consent_n unto_o to_o impose_v upon_o i_o a_o opinion_n i_o never_o utter_v by_o word_n or_o write_v nor_o ever_o harbour_v in_o my_o thought_n that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o her_o error_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o salvation_n to_o clip_v my_o word_n and_o force_v they_o against_o my_o will_n and_o well_o declare_v meaning_n to_o his_o malicious_a purpose_n and_o notwithstanding_o these_o enormous_a excess_n and_o absurdity_n of_o his_o speech_n his_o presumption_n be_v so_o blind_a that_o he_o conclude_v his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n say_v that_o though_o his_o treatise_n contain_v nothing_o else_o but_o this_o check_n he_o give_v to_o i_o it_o must_v be_v grateful_a to_o his_o excellency_n if_o this_o address_n be_v make_v to_o a_o weak_a or_o dull_a person_n it_o be_v yet_o criminal_a enough_o but_o present_v to_o so_o deep_a a_o judgement_n and_o well_o know_v wisdom_n as_o that_o of_o my_o lord_n lieutenant_n pardon_v i_o sacred_a law_n of_o modesty_n if_o i_o say_v its_o a_o very_a insolent_a boldness_n but_o now_o to_o our_o chief_a case_n in_o debate_n chap._n iii_o mr._n s._n his_o cold_a defence_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o church_n examine_v both_o in_o my_o declaration_n and_o in_o my_o print_a sermon_n or_o discourse_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o signify_v that_o the_o only_a anchor_n leave_v to_o keep_v i_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o after_o a_o strong_a apprehension_n of_o its_o erroneous_a tenet_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o infallibility_n grant_v to_o that_o church_n and_o the_o head_n of_o it_o but_o that_o anchor_n be_v cut_v off_o and_o a_o clear_a discovery_n make_v of_o the_o fallacy_n of_o their_o pretend_a infallibility_n i_o set_v open_a my_o eye_n and_o heart_n to_o receive_v the_o light_n which_o god_n send_v i_o in_o his_o holy_a writ_n to_o discover_v their_o pernicious_a error_n and_o declare_v for_o his_o truth_n against_o they_o my_o adversary_n preceive_v this_o to_o be_v the_o hinge_n all_o the_o fabric_n go_v on_o and_o that_o if_o i_o be_v persuade_v to_o that_o infallibility_n i_o will_v blind_v my_o eye_n and_o follow_v without_o any_o further_a dispute_n the_o conduct_n of_o such_o a_o guide_n go_v about_o to_o set_v up_o the_o say_a infallibility_n with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o so_o entitle_v his_o book_n the_o unerring_a unerreable_a church_n but_o his_o way_n to_o compass_v his_o design_n be_v very_o odd_a which_o be_v yield_v to_o my_o first_o and_o main_z attack_z upon_o it_o that_o be_v the_o uncertainty_n of_o such_o a_o infallibility_n to_o assist_v they_o which_o i_o provee_v by_o the_o disconformity_n of_o their_o author_n in_o assert_v it_o and_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o ground_n they_o produce_v for_o it_o but_o mr._n i._n s._n in_o the_o page_n 167._o give_v i_o leave_v to_o believe_v what_o i_o please_v therein_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n
allege_v that_o that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a he_o can_v carry_v so_o much_o alone_o but_o he_o and_o a_o horse_n with_o he_o such_o quibble_n as_o these_o be_v more_o become_a mr._n s._n then_o s._n paul_n and_o so_o he_o may_v keep_v they_o for_o himself_o and_o not_o father_n they_o upon_o the_o great_a apostle_n further_o he_o proceed_v to_o oppose_v st_n paul_n say_v that_o when_o he_o write_v that_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o complete_v and_o only_o the_o whole_a canon_n and_o no_o part_n of_o it_o can_v be_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o our_o instruction_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o can_v be_v a_o sufficient_a mean_n for_o instruct_v we_o to_o salvation_n herein_o our_o sophister_n be_v twice_o impious_a first_o in_o tax_v the_o great_a apostle_n assertion_n with_o untruth_n next_o that_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n deliver_v to_o man_n in_o each_o time_n for_o their_o instruction_n to_o salvation_n shall_v not_o be_v complete_a and_o sufficient_a by_o this_o it_o appear_v well_o how_o much_o a_o stranger_n this_o man_n be_v to_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o divine_n who_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v contain_v all_o necessary_a verity_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o ten_o commandment_n all_o duty_n to_o be_v perform_v of_o necessity_n to_o the_o same_o end_n and_o may_v not_o the_o creed_n and_o ten_o commandment_n be_v know_v without_o a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n his_o boldness_n be_v prodigious_a in_o assert_v extravagance_n without_o exhibit_v any_o proof_n but_o his_o bare_a ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la pythagoras-wise_a find_v i_o say_v i_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o p●thagoras_n his_o school_n where_o ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la be_v the_o rule_n and_o man_n will_v not_o give_v reason_n for_o what_o they_o teach_v he_o oppose_v that_o if_o i_o be_o to_o expect_v reason_n for_o what_o i_o believe_v i_o be_o not_o fit_a for_o christ_n school_n nor_o learning_n from_o scripture_n which_o afford_v nothing_o but_o a_o bare_a ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la but_o if_o the_o man_n have_v any_o ingenuity_n in_o he_o he_o will_v spare_v this_o objection_n see_v it_o prevent_v in_o the_o 18._o page_n of_o my_o discourse_n where_o i_o acknowledge_v with_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n that_o i_o never_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o of_o the_o creed_n propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o catholic_a apostolic_a church_n and_o dictate_v by_o god_n almighty_a worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v without_o examen_fw-la not_o so_o pythagoras_n nor_o the_o pope_n chap._n v._o mr._n s._n his_o prolix_a excursion_n about_o the_o pope_n authority_n requisite_a to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a scripture_n declare_v to_o be_v impertinent_a and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n clear_v from_o the_o confusion_n he_o put_v upon_o it_o our_o adversary_n find_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n to_o be_v a_o expression_n odious_a and_o ridiculous_a to_o all_o know_a man_n and_o whereof_o even_o the_o sober_a part_n of_o 3_o of_o vid._n cress_n in_o exomologesi_fw-la cap_n 4._o sect._n 3_o romanist_n grow_v ashamed_a endeavour_n to_o serve_v we_o up_o the_o same_o dish_n under_o another_o dress_n calling_z it_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o if_o therein_o he_o do_v speak_v proper_o or_o sincere_o he_o will_v have_v less_o opposition_n from_o we_o but_o if_o you_o do_v inquire_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o church_n universal_a he_o tell_v you_o it_o be_v the_o congregation_n subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n exclude_v all_o other_o man_n and_o particular_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o be_v any_o part_n of_o that_o his_o universal_a church_n the_o say_a congregation_n subject_a to_o the_o pope_n whether_o diffusive_a or_o representative_a in_o a_o general_a council_n depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o confirm_v by_o he_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v infallible_a and_o whatever_o i_o allege_v against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o think_v to_o elude_v by_o pretend_v i_o speak_v of_o the_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n a_o gross_a misunderstanding_n or_o wilful_a misrepresentation_n of_o my_o meaning_n for_o which_o i_o never_o give_v any_o ground_n in_o my_o writing_n or_o discourse_n he_o be_v to_o know_v i_o speak_v in_o proper_a term_n as_o use_v among_o learned_a man_n speak_v upon_o this_o subject_n take_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o party_n follow_v the_o pope_n faction_n wheresoever_o extant_a whether_o congregat_v or_o disperse_v prescind_v from_o his_o altercation_n with_o the_o rest_n or_o any_o they_o have_v among_o themselves_o for_o both_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n agree_v in_o make_v that_o infallibility_n depend_v ultimate_o upon_o the_o pope_n authority_n we_o may_v well_o represent_v their_o assertion_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o all_o other_o christian_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n contra_fw-la infallibility_n that_o all_o be_v bottom_v upon_o the_o pope_n authority_n bellarmin_n declare_v say_v totam_fw-la firmitatem_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la legitimorum_fw-la esse_fw-la á_z pontifice_fw-la non-partim_a à_fw-la pontifice_fw-la partim_fw-la à_fw-la concilio_fw-la lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr rom._n pon._n c._n 3._o sect_n at_o contra_fw-la the_o term_n and_o state_n of_o the_o question_n be_v thus_o clear_v it_o follow_v to_o declare_v how_o impertinent_a his_o prolix_a excursion_n and_o vain_a ostentation_n be_v in_o tell_v we_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n that_o be_v in_o different_a time_n about_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o difficulty_n of_o ascertain_v we_o which_o be_v the_o true_a one_o this_o be_v a_o old_a device_n of_o those_o of_o his_o faction_n to_o decline_v the_o main_a controversy_n in_o hand_n wherein_o they_o still_o betray_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o cause_n they_o and_o he_o shall_v remember_v the_o point_v controvert_v be_v among_o party_n that_o agree_v in_o reverence_v the_o bible_n for_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n and_o if_o he_o think_v the_o part_n of_o it_o receive_v for_o canonical_a by_o common_a consent_n will_v not_o suffice_v for_o end_v our_o controversy_n we_o admit_v willing_o st._n augustins_n rule_v for_o clear_v the_o difficulty_n touch_v particular_a book_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o it_o as_o describe_v by_o lirinensis_n quod_fw-la semper_fw-la quod_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la apud_fw-la omnes_fw-la what_o be_v in_o all_o time_n in_o all_o place_n and_o by_o all_o christian_n deliver_v that_o we_o take_v for_o a_o true_a apostolic_a tradition_n and_o to_o it_o we_o resolve_v to_o stand_v or_o fall_v as_o well_o for_o discern_v canonical_a scripture_n as_o for_o understand_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o if_o mr._n s._n do_v take_v church_n and_o tradition_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v and_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v he_o will_v find_v in_o we_o all_o due_a reverence_n to_o those_o sacred_a fountain_n of_o christian_a verity_n but_o to_o call_v church_n universal_a the_o faction_n adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o christian_n be_v a_o presumption_n like_o that_o of_o the_o turk_n in_o call_v himself_o king_n of_o king_n and_o emperor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n such_o as_o be_v vassal_n to_o he_o may_v revere_v that_o call_n other_o do_v laugh_v at_o it_o but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v the_o turk_n to_o have_v pla●ed_v the_o sool_n so_o far_o as_o to_o take_v that_o his_o assume_v title_n as_o grant_v by_o other_o prince_n independ_v upon_o he_o or_o to_o allege_v it_o for_o ground_n of_o his_o pretension_n with_o they_o this_o be_v mr._n s._n his_o folly_n in_o take_v for_o grant_v in_o his_o debate_n with_o we_o that_o the_o romish_a faction_n be_v the_o catholic_a universal_a church_n so_o great_a a_o intruder_n upon_o dispute_n shall_v learn_v that_o rule_n of_o disputant_n quoth_v gratis_o dicitur_fw-la gratis_o negatur_fw-la what_o be_v bare_o say_v without_o proof_n be_v sufficient_o refute_v with_o a_o bare_a denial_n this_o alone_a well_o consider_v will_v suffice_v to_o overthrow_v man_n chapter_n of_o mr._n s._n his_o book_n what_o make_v he_o spend_v time_n in_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o find_v out_o which_o be_v true_a scripture_n the_o rule_n true_o infallible_a of_o our_o belief_n when_o he_o see_v we_o thus_o ascertain_v of_o it_o why_o do_v he_o trouble_v we_o with_o speak_v of_o a_o criterion_n or_o beam_n of_o light_n pretend_v by_o fanatic_o confess_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o to_o be_v explode_v by_o protestant_n be_v it_o to_o make_v his_o book_n swell_v but_o find_v he_o can_v hide_v scripture_n from_o we_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o true_a
parisian_a doctor_n in_o their_o declaration_n against_o the_o forementioned_a thesis_n of_o clermont_n college_n present_v to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n extant_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o many_o both_o in_o french_a and_o english_a and_o if_o their_o reason_n exhibit_v for_o their_o censure_n be_v consider_v well_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o to_o comprehend_v mr._n i._n s._n his_o opinion_n no_o less_o than_o that_o of_o the_o clermont_n jesuit_n since_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o do_v bottom_n the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n upon_o the_o pope_n authority_n whether_o in_o a_o council_n or_o out_o of_o it_o and_o so_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o parisian_a divine_n do_v conclude_v in_o either_o case_n that_o it_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n injurious_a to_o jesus_n christ_n to_o ascribe_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o infallibility_n which_o christ_n alone_o possess_v and_o that_o man_n shall_v render_v that_o supreme_a cultus_fw-la of_o divine_a faith_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o allegation_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o obedience_n due_a to_o the_o church_n as_o to_o christ_n and_o of_o promise_n make_v of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n govern_v by_o they_o will_v appear_v very_o impertinent_a to_o his_o purpose_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o faction_n when_o we_o come_v to_o examine_v the_o text_n allege_v for_o which_o i_o will_v assign_v the_o chapter_n follow_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o may_v conclude_v from_o what_o be_v say_v in_o this_o chapter_n that_o to_o ascribe_v infallibility_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v blasphemy_n in_o the_o opinion_n even_o of_o popish_a doctor_n and_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o pecular_a way_n of_o defend_v that_o tenet_n declare_v for_o heretical_a by_o doctor_n of_o his_o own_o party_n which_o be_v my_o present_a undertake_n to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v the_o opinion_n of_o mr._n 19.20.21_o mr._n tabul_n suff._n cap._n 19.20.21_o thomas_n white_a of_o the_o same_o communion_n who_o whole_a book_n call_v his_o tabulae_fw-la suffragiale_n be_v purposely_o design_v against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n personal_a infallibility_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v not_o heretical_a but_o archiheretical_a and_o that_o the_o propagate_a of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v in_o its_o kind_n a_o most_o grievous_a sin_n so_o weary_a man_n of_o learning_n and_o part_n begin_v to_o grow_v of_o this_o intolerable_a arrogance_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o court_n and_o of_o their_o flatterer_n chap._n vii_o our_o adversary_n corruption_n of_o scripture_n detect_v our_o adversary_n certain_o never_o look_v into_o the_o bible_n for_o the_o text_n he_o allege_v for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o church_n but_o snatch_v they_o out_o of_o some_o of_o his_o old_a controvertist_n who_o custom_n be_v to_o clip_v and_o cut_v scripture_n to_o their_o own_o pretence_n without_o regard_n of_o their_o true_a meaning_n or_o if_o he_o have_v see_v they_o with_o their_o context_n he_o have_v be_v strange_o dull_a in_o not_o perceive_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o they_o very_o obvious_a to_o any_o ordinary_a good_a understanding_n or_o malicious_a in_o misrepresent_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o this_o be_v especial_o see_v in_o his_o allegation_n of_o these_o word_n joh._n xv._o 26._o when_o the_o paraclete_n will_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v from_o my_o father_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o will_v give_v testimony_n of_o i_o and_o you_o will_v give_v testimony_n this_o he_o will_v have_v we_o take_v for_o a_o certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assistance_n promise_v to_o his_o church_n if_o he_o do_v see_v the_o half_a verse_n immediate_o follow_v which_o he_o leave_v out_o or_o his_o tutor_n cut_v off_o he_o will_v find_v that_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n with_o circumstance_n make_v they_o impossible_a to_o be_v apply_v to_o his_o church_n the_o verse_n restore_v to_o its_o integrity_n say_v thus_o and_o you_o also_o shall_v bear_v witness_n because_o you_o have_v be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o beginning_n what_o man_n in_o his_o sense_n will_v think_v those_o word_n appliable_a to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n with_o christ_n from_o the_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o yet_o descend_v he_o confirm_v further_o his_o opinion_n out_o of_o act_n the_o xv._o 28._o where_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n at_o jerusalem_n decide_v the_o controversy_n concern_v circumcision_n deliver_v their_o opinion_n thus_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o signify_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v assist_v they_o and_o that_o ground_a on_o the_o word_n aforesaid_a of_o our_o saviour_n joh._n xv._o 26._o when_o the_o paraclete_n will_v come_v he_o shall_v give_v testimony_n of_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v give_v testimony_n of_o i_o if_o that_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o apostle_n phrase_n we_o have_v see_v before_o to_o who_o that_o promise_n be_v give_v whether_o to_o the_o apostle_n alone_o or_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v for_o ever_o we_o have_v see_v that_o the_o text_n in_o its_o integrity_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o latter_a but_o mr._n i._n s._n of_o his_o own_o authority_n declare_v that_o promise_n be_v make_v by_o christ_n not_o only_o to_o the_o apostle_n but_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o ever_o and_o to_o make_v this_o latter_a text_n sound_v something_o like_a to_o his_o purpose_n he_o patch_n it_o up_o with_o a_o piece_n of_o a_o verse_n fetch_v out_o of_o matth._n xxviii_o until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n this_o usual_a art_n of_o they_o of_o cut_v from_o the_o text_n what_o be_v against_o their_o purpose_n and_o patch_v they_o with_o other_o word_n far_o fetch_v that_o may_v have_v a_o gloss_n or_o appearance_n of_o their_o pretention_n may_v be_v practise_v with_o more_o safety_n in_o conversation_n or_o in_o a_o sermon_n to_o a_o vulgar_a auditory_a then_o in_o a_o serious_a debate_n by_o print_n expose_v to_o a_o strict_a examen_fw-la this_o be_v a_o cheat_n like_o that_o use_v in_o italy_n with_o rot_a apple_n to_o set_v they_o out_o for_o sound_n they_o cut_v off_o the_o rot_a piece_n and_o glue_v together_o the_o sound_a fragment_n to_o a_o appearance_n of_o a_o fair_a apple_n but_o be_v handle_v more_o close_o it_o fall_v in_o piece_n and_o discover_v the_o cheat_n this_o abominable_a legerdemain_n be_v too_o often_o see_v in_o their_o pulpit_n father_v upon_o the_o gospel_n forsooth_o most_o execrable_a blasphemy_n extol_v their_o several_a new_a saint_n to_o who_o they_o will_v gain_v devotion_n and_o by_o that_o devotion_n money_n to_o their_o coffer_n above_o the_o apostle_n above_o the_o angel_n above_o christ_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n to_o the_o perpetual_a scandal_n of_o the_o discreet_a part_n of_o their_o own_o flock_n and_o edification_n of_o none_o all_o be_v sanctify_v with_o they_o by_o repete_v at_o the_o end_n of_o every_o desperate_a discourse_n some_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o a_o burden_n of_o the_o song_n though_o with_o no_o relation_n in_o its_o sense_n to_o their_o purpose_n this_o be_v the_o art_n mr._n i._o s._n use_v with_o the_o testimony_n relate_v of_o act_n xv._o touch_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n ground_v as_o he_o confess_v upon_o the_o aforesaid_a text_n of_o john_n xv._o 26._o declare_v to_o relate_v only_o to_o the_o apostle_n then_o present_a and_o mr._n i._n s._n of_o his_o own_o head_n will_v have_v it_o extend_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o ever_o and_o his_o interpretation_n must_v be_v take_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o close_v it_o up_o with_o this_o fragment_n of_o the_o twenty_o verse_n of_o matthew_n the_o xxviii_o until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o text_n he_o corrupt_v and_o cut_v off_o matth._n xxviii_o contain_v a_o promise_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o church_n found_v and_o faith_n preach_v by_o they_o that_o he_o will_v assist_v they_o for_o ever_o say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o the_o day_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n st._n hierom_n better_a than_o mr._n i._o s._n will_v tell_v we_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n gloss_v thus_o upon_o they_o qui_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la consummationem_fw-la seculi_fw-la cum_fw-la discipulis_fw-la se_fw-la futurum_fw-la esse_fw-la promittit_fw-la &_o illos_fw-la ostendit_fw-la semper_fw-la esse_fw-la victuros_fw-la &_o se_fw-la nunquam_fw-la à_fw-la credentibus_fw-la recessurum_fw-la in_o these_o word_n our_o saviour_n promise_v to_o his_o disciple_n life_n everlasting_a and_o to_o the_o church_n found_v by_o they_o and_o to_o all_o true_a believer_n in_o he_o his_o
safe_a way_n to_o salsation_n be_v it_o safe_a to_o venture_v in_o a_o leaky_a ship_n upon_o a_o stormy_a sea_n but_o what_o say_v he_o to_o the_o stream_n of_o learned_a author_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n which_o dr._n stillingfleet_n relate_v and_o of_o the_o very_a learned_a book_n he_o write_v himself_o prove_v with_o irresistible_a argument_n that_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o several_a of_o her_o present_a tenet_n and_o practice_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n be_v idolatry_n of_o those_o pious_a opinion_n which_o matter_n not_o for_o salvation_n and_o let_v mr._n i.s._n know_v that_o i_o consider_v long_o and_o examine_v thorough_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n before_o i_o declare_v for_o it_o and_o he_o may_v spare_v his_o labour_n of_o catechise_n i_o in_o the_o tenet_n of_o it_o chap._n x._o a_o check_n to_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o insolent_a thesis_n prefix_v for_o title_n to_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n and_o his_o own_o argument_n retort_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n under_o so_o pregnant_a and_o big_a promise_v a_o title_n as_o this_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o in_o a_o book_n present_v to_o the_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n the_o earl_n of_o essex_n under_o so_o magnificent_a a_o title_n i_o say_v expose_v to_o the_o view_n of_o so_o great_a and_o judicious_a a_o person_n who_o will_v not_o expect_v a_o very_a exquisite_a discourse_n to_o go_v through_o so_o stout_a a_o undertake_n and_o behold_v reader_n what_o mr._n i._o s._n present_v to_o his_o excellency_n for_o that_o purpose_n for_o a_o foundation_n of_o his_o discourse_n he_o will_v have_v we_o premise_v that_o protestant_n do_v allow_v papist_n not_o to_o err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a to_o salvation_n that_o our_o difference_n with_o they_o be_v about_o point_v not_o fundamental_a he_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o regard_v or_o know_v which_o be_v these_o point_n call_v fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a which_o be_v a_o bad_a beginning_n to_o be_v clear_a and_o exact_a in_o the_o present_a engagement_n but_o he_o be_v to_o suppose_v with_o dr._n stillingfleet_n dr._n potter_n and_o other_o learned_a writer_n of_o both_o church_n 42._o church_n see_v chillingworth_n his_o answer_n to_o the_o book_n entitle_v charity_n maintain_v etc._n etc._n c._n 4._o and_o dr._n hammond_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o fundamental_o c._n 2._o stillingfleet_n in_o his_o rational_a account_n part._n 1._o cap._n 2._o b._n laud_n p._n 42._o follow_v therein_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o father_n and_o schoolman_n that_o the_o point_n fundamental_a or_o of_o necessary_a belief_n to_o salvation_n and_o to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n be_v those_o contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o be_v a_o system_fw-la or_o summary_n of_o article_n which_o those_o sacred_a founder_n of_o christianity_n think_v fit_a and_o sufficient_a to_o be_v propose_v to_o all_o man_n where_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v and_o necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v so_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n call_v it_o fundamentum_fw-la firmum_fw-la &_o unicum_fw-la sess_n 3._o not_o the_o firm_a alone_a but_o the_o only_a foundation_n point_v not_o fundamental_a or_o inferior_a truth_n be_v all_o other_o divine_a verity_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o write_v in_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o deliver_v to_o we_o by_o apostolical_a universal_a tradition_n implicit_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n where_o we_o profess_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o explicit_o to_o be_v believe_v when_o we_o shall_v be_v ascertain_v that_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o those_o oracle_n of_o god_n call_v inferior_a truth_n not_o that_o they_o be_v of_o less_o certainty_n and_o objective_a infallibility_n in_o themselves_o than_o the_o other_o call_v fundamental_a but_o because_o the_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o they_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a or_o obvious_a to_o all_o man_n and_o consequent_o be_v more_o capable_a of_o inculpable_a ignorance_n of_o they_o and_o error_n about_o they_o in_o many_o man_n and_o because_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v agree_v with_o we_o in_o the_o explicit_a confession_n of_o this_o creed_n it_o be_v say_v not_o to_o err_v in_o fundamental_a point_n though_o find_v guilty_a of_o pernicious_a error_n touch_v other_o point_n not_o fundamental_a and_o with_o this_o supposition_n i_o be_o confident_a my_o antagonist_n will_v not_o quarrel_v if_o you_o take_v he_o here_o before_o he_o see_v my_o reflection_n upon_o his_o unwary_a argument_n upon_o the_o foresay_a foundation_n mr._n i._o s._n build_v this_o thesis_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n as_o it_o be_v condistinct_a from_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o say_v he_o it_o do_v not_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o no_o church_n can_v be_v call_v of_o christ_n further_a than_o it_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n that_o protestancy_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o popish_a be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v with_o this_o syllogism_n no_o fallible_a doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o protestancy_n be_v altogether_o fallible_a doctrine_n therefore_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v proper_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n this_o syllogism_n he_o chalk_v out_o to_o we_o in_o a_o different_a character_n for_o remarkable_a as_o indeed_o it_o be_v and_o for_o unanswerable_a for_o it_o be_v in_o ferio_n say_v he_o pag._n 142._o the_o major_a proposition_n we_o allow_v willing_o the_o minor_a to_o wit_n that_o protestancy_n be_v altogether_o fallible_a doctrine_n he_o say_v be_v manifest_a by_o virtue_n of_o this_o other_o no_o less_o remarkable_a syllogism_n protestancy_n or_o the_o doctrine_n wherein_o protestant_n do_v differ_v from_o papist_n be_v altogether_o of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a or_o inferior_a truth_n be_v fallible_a doctrine_n therefore_o protestancy_n be_v but_o fallible_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o no_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n he_o conclude_v with_o these_o word_n i_o confess_v ingenuous_o i_o think_v this_o argument_n can_v be_v solid_o answer_v if_o his_o confession_n herein_o be_v ingenuous_a indeed_o let_v he_o take_v in_o return_v this_o other_o ingenuous_a confession_n from_o i_o that_o i_o think_v serious_o he_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a man_n if_o he_o be_v sensible_a himself_o of_o the_o fallacy_n and_o falsehood_n of_o his_o argument_n he_o be_v unworthy_a in_o beguile_v his_o reader_n and_o unwise_a in_o expose_v it_o to_o a_o polemical_a strict_a debate_n and_o think_v we_o shall_v want_v a_o solid_a answer_n to_o so_o silly_a a_o sophism_n not_o to_o give_v it_o yet_o a_o more_o severe_a check_n haply_o he_o have_v that_o poor_a excuse_n in_o his_o favour_n that_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v to_o see_v whether_o my_o answer_n be_v solid_a let_v we_o examine_v how_o solid_a his_o argument_n be_v the_o stress_n of_o it_o lie_v in_o his_o latter_a syllogism_n who_o major_a proposition_n be_v that_o protestancy_n or_o the_o doctrine_n wherein_o protestant_n do_v differ_v from_o papist_n be_v altogether_o of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a this_o we_o allow_v he_o to_o take_v for_o grant_v let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o minor_a but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a or_o inferior_a truth_n say_v he_o be_v fallible_a doctrine_n stop_v here_o sir_n and_o if_o justice_n be_v do_v to_o you_o a_o perpetual_a stop_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o your_o tongue_n for_o blasphemon_n from_o speak_v any_o more_o it_o be_v a_o formal_a blasphemy_n and_o a_o horrid_a one_o to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a or_o inferior_a truth_n in_o general_n be_v fallible_a doctrine_n it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fallible_a remember_v what_o be_v premise_v a_o little_a before_o and_o suppose_v by_o yourself_o in_o many_o place_n of_o your_o present_a discourse_n that_o the_o point_n call_v not_o fundamental_a be_v all_o those_o other_o divine_a verity_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o write_v in_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o deliver_v to_o we_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n beside_o the_o point_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o equal_a objective_n certainty_n and_o truth_n with_o the_o other_o point_n they_o be_v of_o a_o size_n as_o
ireland_n whither_o i_o be_v send_v to_o convert_v protestant_n the_o case_n be_v with_o papist_n who_o concern_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o relation_n and_o friend_n of_o the_o protestant_a communion_n inquire_v whether_o such_o believe_v sincere_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n never_o convince_v of_o the_o contrary_a and_o live_v religious_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o his_o commandment_n may_v be_v save_v i_o answer_v they_o may_v and_o be_v not_o heretic_n but_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o dignity_n receive_v in_o their_o baptism_n and_o not_o to_o be_v lose_v otherwise_o then_o by_o formal_a heresy_n or_o infidelity_n whereof_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a by_o the_o foresay_a supposition_n you_o say_v all_o be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v not_o discretion_n to_o declare_v truth_n itself_o when_o there_o be_v no_o obligation_n of_o declare_v it_o well_o but_o be_v there_o not_o a_o obligation_n upon_o i_o when_o question_v to_o answer_v according_a to_o truth_n no_o say_v you_o for_o if_o the_o inquirer_n be_v papist_n they_o need_v not_o to_o be_v instruct_v in_o that_o truth_n it_o be_v no_o fundamental_a truth_n if_o protestant_n they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o know_v it_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o that_o the_o answer_n be_v a_o encouragement_n to_o they_o to_o remain_v as_o they_o be_v a_o pretty_a subtlety_n we_o have_v declare_v before_o how_o touch_v point_v not_o fundamental_a there_o may_v be_v pernicious_a error_n such_o be_v that_o opposite_a to_o the_o truth_n we_o now_o speak_v of_o a_o error_n subversive_a of_o christian_a charity_n and_o public_a peace_n a_o seed_n of_o those_o animosity_n rebellion_n and_o combustion_n which_o make_v this_o land_n unhappy_a and_o ought_v not_o a_o sincere_a instructor_n and_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o oppose_v this_o error_n no_o say_v you_o because_o it_o be_v to_o encourage_v protestant_n to_o remain_v as_o they_o be_v and_o not_o to_o come_v under_o the_o pope_n obedience_n there_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o your_o dislike_n of_o i_o thus_o indeed_o stand_v the_o case_n and_o this_o be_v one_o of_o my_o chief_a reason_n to_o be_v dissatisfy_v of_o your_o way_n that_o the_o rule_n of_o my_o doctrine_n among_o you_o must_v not_o be_v truth_n but_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o dominion_n whether_o by_o right_n or_o wrong_n this_o point_n of_o policy_n or_o discretion_n as_o you_o call_v it_o i_o refuse_v open_o to_o learn_v from_o you_o choose_v rather_o to_o be_v of_o the_o child_n of_o light_n though_o with_o less_o prudence_n in_o your_o opinion_n then_o of_o the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n by_o that_o elevate_a point_n of_o prudence_n you_o will_v teach_v i_o of_o prostitute_a truth_n and_o honesty_n to_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n and_o interest_n chap._n vii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o answer_n to_o my_o objection_n against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n refute_v his_o defence_n of_o bellarmin_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o costerus_n declare_v to_o be_v weak_a and_o vain_a our_o adversary_n foreseeing_a what_o small_a assistance_n he_o can_v have_v from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n to_o maintain_v his_o tenet_n employ_n his_o main_a force_n in_o set_v up_o their_o ordinary_a great_a engine_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n and_o have_v bestow_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o his_o book_n upon_o that_o subject_n turn_v to_o it_o again_o begin_v the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o say_a book_n with_o reflection_n upon_o some_o of_o my_o argument_n against_o their_o pretention_n and_o want_v it_o seem_v material_n to_o bring_v his_o book_n to_o the_o intend_a bulk_n repotes_fw-la much_o of_o what_o he_o say_v before_o wherein_o i_o will_v not_o imitate_v he_o by_o repete_v my_o reply_n my_o desire_n be_v to_o abbreviate_v as_o far_o as_o may_v consist_v with_o a_o full_a satisfaction_n to_o all_o his_o objection_n he_o pretend_v to_o cast_v a_o mist_n over_o the_o case_n turn_v the_o usual_a term_n of_o pope_n infallibility_n to_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o church_n he_o mean_v fraudulent_o not_o the_o church_n universal_a true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a to_o which_o i_o allow_v all_o the_o privilege_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n promise_v to_o it_o in_o scripture_n though_o he_o signify_v that_o he_o doubt_v of_o my_o meaning_n herein_o but_o his_o own_o particular_a church_n i_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o he_o do_v wilful_o impose_v upon_o i_o happy_o to_o gain_v time_n or_o draw_v we_o from_o the_o point_n but_o the_o congregation_n subject_n to_o the_o pope_n wheresoever_o extant_a defender_n of_o a_o bad_a cause_n do_v love_v such_o confusion_n and_o obscurity_n as_o fox_n hole_n and_o thicket_n but_o we_o must_v keep_v he_o to_o the_o light_n and_o to_o the_o ordinary_a use_n of_o term_n take_v for_o pope_n infallibility_n the_o same_o which_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o communion_n attribute_n to_o their_o church_n depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n as_o be_v declare_v above_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o five_o chapter_n i_o say_v i_o admire_v that_o bellarmin_n shall_v make_v it_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n that_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v bear_v in_o his_o breastplate_n two_o hebrew_n word_n signify_v doctrine_n and_o truth_n i_o question_v whether_o he_o believe_v all_o those_o high_a priest_n even_o caiphas_n condemn_v christ_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o their_o judgement_n mr._n i._o s._n to_o relieve_v bellarmin_n endeavour_v to_o autorize_v the_o affirmative_a and_o to_o that_o of_o caiphas_n sa●es_v nothing_o and_o so_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o think_v that_o he_o hold_v he_o also_o infallible_a according_a to_o that_o rule_n qui_fw-la tacet_fw-la consentire_fw-la videtur_fw-la by_o which_o we_o have_v this_o further_a notice_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o singular_a doctrine_n that_o he_o find_v caiphas_n infallible_a in_o his_o judgement_n pass_v against_o the_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o tax_v i_o with_o ignorance_n for_o not_o know_v so_o much_o i_o accuse_v they_o of_o make_v the_o pope_n arbiter_n and_o supreme_a judge_n over_o god_n law_n so_o bellarmin_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n c._n 5._o stick_v not_o to_o say_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n do_v command_v vice_n and_o prohibit_v virtue_n the_o church_n will_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v vice_n to_o be_v good_a and_o virtue_n bad_a and_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n command_v the_o decree_n of_o pope_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n since_o have_v confess_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v ordain_v the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n to_o the_o laity_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v practise_v it_o they_o command_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o the_o future_a but_o in_o one_o kind_n allege_v for_o reason_n that_o the_o precedent_a pope_n and_o church_n do_v practise_v it_o so_o which_o be_v to_o extol_v the_o decree_n of_o pope_n above_o they_o of_o christ_n as_o if_o the_o law_n of_o england_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v or_o practise_v in_o ireland_n but_o according_a to_o the_o will_n and_o declaration_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n certain_o the_o king_n of_o france_n will_v be_v deem_v of_o more_o power_n in_o ireland_n than_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o people_n more_o his_o subject_n to_o that_o of_o bellarmin_n you_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o vice_n and_o virtue_n when_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n of_o their_o be_v such_o for_o example_n if_o there_o shall_v arise_v a_o doubt_n of_o usury_n be_v be_v a_o vice_n and_o in_o that_o case_n the_o pope_n shall_v command_v usury_n to_o be_v practise_v we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o practice_n usury_n herein_o sir_n you_o allow_v we_o all_o that_o we_o pretend_v and_o you_o confess_v what_o we_o condemn_v in_o bellarmin_n i_o can_v allege_v many_o text_n of_o scripture_n suppose_v and_o affirm_v usury_n to_o be_v a_o vice_n but_o you_o spare_v i_o that_o labour_n presuppose_v that_o usury_n of_o itself_o be_v a_o vice_n of_o its_o nature_n bad_a per_fw-la se_fw-la malum_fw-la and_o that_o you_o all_o know_v it_o to_o be_v such_o and_o notwithstanding_o that_o knowledge_n and_o god_n declaration_n in_o scripture_n you_o say_v if_o the_o pope_n shall_v command_v usury_n to_o be_v practise_v we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o practise_v it_o and_o so_o it_o be_v indeed_o with_o you_o both_o in_o usury_n and_o other_o vice_n we_o know_v all_o that_o rebellion_n be_v a_o sin_n and_o soodious_a to_o god_n that_o in_o scripture_n it_o be_v compare_v to_o witchcraft_n and_o idolatry_n 1_o sam._n xv_o 23._o but_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v command_v you_o to_o rebel_v against_o your_o king_n for_o religion_n
shall_v not_o be_v pardon_v in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v therefore_o say_v they_o some_o sin_n be_v pardon_v in_o the_o other_o world_n i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n because_o out_o of_o a_o negative_a a_o positive_a do_v not_o follow_v as_o out_o of_o this_o premise_v joseph_n know_v not_o his_o wife_n until_o she_o have_v bring_v forth_o her_o first_o bear_v son_n this_o consequence_n follow_v not_o in_o opinion_n of_o good_a christian_n therefore_o he_o know_v she_o after_o mr._n i._o s._n answer_n this_o consequence_n follow_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o text_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v to_o believe_v it_o be_v not_o so_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n declare_v against_o the_o text._n if_o you_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o this_o other_o engagement_n you_o will_v deem_v such_o a_o saying_n to_o be_v a_o disrespect_n to_o your_o church_n but_o hard_a undertake_n put_v people_n to_o hard_a shift_n bellarmin_n be_v content_v to_o infer_v the_o existence_n of_o purgatory_n out_o of_o the_o foresay_a text_n of_o st._n matthew_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o prudence_n though_o not_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o logic._n but_o mr._n i._n s._n as_o more_o stout_a will_v pretend_v it_o to_o be_v evident_a according_a to_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o logic._n the_o text_n go_v thus_o he_o that_o will_v speak_v a_o word_n against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o but_o he_o that_o will_v speak_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v he_o neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o future_a out_o of_o which_o word_n he_o argue_v thus_o the_o text_n deny_v to_o a_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o it_o grant_v to_o a_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o what_o it_o deny_v to_o the_o former_a be_v remission_n in_o this_o life_n and_o the_o other_o therefore_o what_o it_o grant_v to_o the_o latter_a be_v remission_n in_o this_o life_n and_o the_o other_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o major_a proposition_n be_v false_a for_o more_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o allow_v to_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n for_o to_o the_o former_a be_v express_o deny_v pardon_n relate_v to_o both_o world_n and_o to_o the_o latter_a pardon_n be_v promise_v only_o indeterminate_v and_o so_o may_v be_v verify_v with_o pardon_v in_o one_o life_n though_o not_o in_o the_o other_o and_o though_o major_a and_o minor_n be_v true_a the_o consequence_n do_v not_o follow_v according_a to_o rule_n of_o logic_n which_o declare_v that_o where_o all_o the_o premise_n be_v particular_n such_o be_v those_o of_o that_o syllogism_n the_o conclusion_n be_v not_o convincent_fw-la as_o in_o this_o syllogism_n a_o man_n speak_v peter_n be_v a_o man_n therefore_o peter_n speak_v mr._n i._o s._n produce_v another_o argument_n upon_o the_o same_o text_n of_o a_o strange_a contexture_n it_o be_v evident_a say_v he_o out_o of_o this_o text_n that_o as_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o spirit_n be_v unpardonable_a so_o all_o other_o sin_n be_v pardonable_a but_o a_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o spirit_n be_v unpardonable_a in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o the_o future_a therefore_o other_o sin_n be_v pardonable_a in_o both_o the_o major_n of_o this_o syllogism_n be_v false_a first_o since_o it_o will_v have_v a_o adequate_a parity_n in_o both_o case_n relate_v to_o the_o place_n of_o pardon_n for_o which_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n in_o the_o text_n as_o declare_v above_o touch_v the_o major_a of_o the_o former_a syllogism_n second_o for_o say_v that_o all_o other_o sin_n be_v pardonable_a for_o which_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o ground_n in_o the_o text_n since_o from_o a_o particular_a premise_v a_o universal_a conclusion_n may_v not_o be_v deduce_v from_o say_v that_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o pardonable_a it_o follow_v not_o by_o any_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o logic_n that_o all_o other_o sin_n be_v pardonable_a for_o though_o that_o occasion_n do_v require_v to_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n possible_a it_o be_v that_o another_o sin_n may_v likewise_o be_v unpardonable_a and_o i_o can_v depose_v that_o i_o see_v defend_v in_o a_o famous_a public_a dispute_n wherein_o i_o have_v a_o share_n myself_o that_o a_o sin_n essential_o unpardonable_a be_v possible_a and_o that_o distinct_a from_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n clear_a by_o a_o example_n i_o will_v let_v you_o see_v the_o frame_n and_o force_v of_o your_o syllogism_n in_o another_o of_o the_o same_o contexture_n thus_o as_o the_o king_n punish_v rebel_n so_o he_o favore_v his_o loyal_a subject_n he_o deny_v to_o every_o rebel_n place_n of_o trust_n and_o honour_n in_o all_o his_o dominion_n therefore_o he_o allow_v to_o every_o loyal_a subject_a place_n of_o trust_n and_o honour_n in_o all_o his_o domimon_n if_o you_o do_v not_o think_v this_o consequence_n to_o be_v legal_a give_v we_o leave_v to_o think_v the_o same_o of_o your_o former_a consequence_n for_o they_o be_v both_o of_o the_o same_o frame_n but_o while_o you_o do_v not_o show_v your_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o firm_a ground_n than_o such_o subtlety_n as_o these_o think_v not_o to_o force_v it_o upon_o we_o nor_o that_o for_o be_v possessor_n of_o it_o many_o year_n as_o you_o say_v we_o will_v judge_v you_o therefore_o to_o be_v bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la possessores_fw-la or_o that_o you_o possess_v it_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o whereas_o the_o forementioned_a text_n matth._n xii_o 32._o be_v in_o so_o great_a repute_n with_o you_o for_o the_o present_a purpose_n that_o you_o say_v with_o bellarmin_n it_o be_v the_o only_a text_n wherewith_o st._n bernard_n do_v prove_v purgatory_n i_o will_v declare_v further_o by_o a_o special_a doctrine_n of_o a_o great_a father_n of_o the_o church_n how_o inconsequent_a be_v the_o existence_n of_o purgatory_n to_o the_o verity_n of_o that_o text._n the_o good_a reception_n you_o give_v to_o a_o subtlety_n of_o school_n man_n i_o produce_v for_o sol●ing_v your_o argument_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n in_o the_o chapter_n precedent_n do_v encourage_v i_o to_o hope_v you_o may_v give_v the_o like_a reception_n to_o another_o subtlety_n of_o a_o learned_a and_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n for_o answer_v this_o other_o argument_n out_o of_o matth._n xii_o in_o the_o 9_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o joshua_n we_o find_v that_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o gibeon_n hear_v of_o victorious_a joshua_n his_o approach_n and_o the_o rigour_n he_o use_v with_o the_o conquer_a place_n near_o they_o come_v into_o he_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v ambassador_n send_v from_o foreign_a country_n to_o solicit_v his_o amity_n they_o come_v in_o old_a clothes_n with_o clout_a shoe_n upon_o their_o foot_n their_o bread_n mouldy_a and_o wine_n bottle_n old_a and_o rend_v as_o if_o all_o do_v signify_v the_o tediousness_n of_o the_o journey_n which_o they_o undergo_v and_o by_o this_o meen_n obtain_v from_o joshua_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o israel_n a_o promise_n of_o safety_n and_o freedom_n but_o after_o three_o day_n march_v the_o israelite_n find_v those_o gibeonite_n that_o seign_v to_o have_v come_v from_o a_o foreign_a country_n to_o be_v inhabitant_n of_o that_o land_n they_o be_v in_o complain_v to_o josua_n of_o the_o fraud_n put_v upon_o they_o but_o he_o not_o to_o infringe_v the_o oath_n he_o make_v will_v not_o consent_v to_o destroy_v they_o but_o punish_v their_o cheat_n with_o a_o note_n of_o infamy_n ordain_v they_o shall_v be_v hewer_n of_o wood_n and_o drawer_n of_o water_n to_o all_o the_o congregation_n upon_o which_o passage_n origin_n deliver_v this_o gloss_n that_o joshua_n be_v a_o type_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o palestine_n the_o promise_a land_n a_o symbol_n of_o heavenly_a bliss_n to_o let_v people_n live_v in_o that_o land_n with_o a_o note_n of_o infamy_n signify_v that_o some_o may_v enter_v with_o some_o blemish_n into_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n his_o word_n be_v remarkable_a as_o follow_v josuam_fw-la follow_v origen_n hom_n in_o josuam_fw-la in_o domo_fw-la patris_fw-la mei_fw-la mansiones_fw-la multae_fw-la sunt_fw-la joh._n fourteen_o 2._o &_o multae_fw-la differentiae_fw-la eorum_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la veniunt_fw-la unde_fw-la &_o gabaunitas_fw-la arbitror_fw-la portiunculam_fw-la quandam_fw-la corum_fw-la esse_fw-la qui_fw-la salvandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la nota_fw-la alicujus_fw-la infamiae_fw-la in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n joh._n fourteen_o 2._o many_o be_v the_o difference_n of_o they_o that_o come_v to_o be_v save_v wherefore_o i_o conceive_v the_o gibeonite_n to_o be_v a_o parcel_n
with_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o which_o we_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v not_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o by_o this_o reader_n you_o may_v see_v how_o rash_o mr._n i._o s._n say_v i_o do_v most_o false_o aver_v that_o suarez_n be_v not_o so_o certain_a whether_o the_o power_n of_o absolve_v give_v to_o the_o church_n do_v extend_v to_o the_o profuse_a grant_n of_o indulgence_n practise_v at_o present_a by_o the_o roman_a church_n let_v the_o learned_a reader_n reflect_v upon_o suarez_n his_o discourse_n upon_o this_o subject_n in_o the_o place_n foremention_v and_o he_o shall_v find_v how_o far_o he_o be_v from_o any_o certainty_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v ground_v upon_o scripture_n and_o primitive_a antiquity_n but_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o only_o believe_v it_o as_o scotus_n do_v that_o of_o transubstantiation_n non_fw-la propter_fw-la rationes_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la cogunt_fw-la not_o in_o force_n of_o argument_n allege_v for_o it_o which_o be_v not_o convince_a but_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o church_n and_o mark_v reader_n that_o so_o great_a man_n as_o cajetan_n and_o suarez_n be_v employ_v by_o public_a authority_n in_o defend_v this_o doctrine_n after_o bestow_v all_o their_o learning_n and_o no_o small_a labour_n in_o procure_v to_o establish_v it_o we_o find_v they_o confess_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v serious_o for_o it_o but_o what_o the_o collier_n for_o his_o faith_n viz._n that_o he_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o here_o also_o they_o mistake_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o authority_n of_o it_o a_o mistake_n in_o truth_n more_o tolerable_a in_o a_o collier_n then_o in_o man_n of_o the_o learning_n and_o repute_n of_o cajetan_n and_o suarez_n but_o such_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o their_o cause_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v defend_v better_o and_o such_o be_v their_o engagement_n that_o they_o must_v defend_v it_o by_o right_n or_o wrong_n i_o conceive_v my_o antagonist_n complain_v that_o i_o have_v neglect_v he_o in_o this_o chapter_n and_o i_o confess_v free_o i_o delight_v more_o in_o deal_v with_o people_n of_o that_o learning_n and_o ingenuity_n i_o see_v in_o cajetan_n and_o suarez_n then_o with_o mr._n i._o s._n but_o be_v we_o be_v debtor_n to_o all_o i_o will_v give_v a_o turn_n to_o he_o also_o upon_o this_o subject_n and_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n xxix_o the_o unhappy_a success_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o great_a boast_n of_o skill_n in_o history_n touch_v the_o antiquity_n of_o indulgence_n discover_v in_o the_o 90_o page_n of_o my_o former_a discourse_n speak_v of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o indulgence_n i_o mention_v that_o the_o first_o notice_n i_o have_v of_o the_o grant_v of_o they_o after_o the_o manner_n now_o use_v be_v that_o of_o gregory_n the_o vii_o give_v to_o those_o of_o his_o party_n who_o will_v fight_v against_o the_o emperor_n henry_n iii_o by_o error_n of_o the_o printer_n iv_o in_o the_o year_n 1084._o which_o baronius_n relate_v from_o his_o penitentiary_n in_o which_o be_v promise_v remission_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n to_o such_o as_o will_v venture_v their_o life_n in_o that_o holy_a war_n for_o which_o i_o quote_v baronius_n his_o annal_n upon_o the_o foresay_a year_n 1084._o num_fw-la 15._o here_o mr._n i._o s._n enter_v in_o triumph_n and_o declare_v that_o if_o i_o have_v no_o more_o skill_n in_o divinity_n or_o moral_a theology_n than_o i_o seem_v to_o have_v in_o history_n i_o be_o but_o a_o freshwater_n scholar_n as_o for_o controversy_n say_v he_o my_o treatise_n show_v well_o what_o i_o know_v of_o it_o be_v it_o so_o sir_n let_v i_o have_v truth_n on_o my_o side_n as_o i_o hope_v will_v appear_v by_o this_o treatise_n and_o make_v you_o much_o of_o your_o skill_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v we_o examine_v how_o much_o it_o be_v in_o the_o present_a point_n of_o history_n wherein_o you_o pretend_v to_o be_v most_o magisterial_a first_o you_o mistake_v most_o absurd_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n as_o be_v usual_a with_o you_o and_o where_o i_o speak_v of_o indulgence_n give_v by_o gregory_n the_o seven_o to_o those_o of_o his_o party_n who_o will_v fight_v against_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o three_o you_o report_v such_o indulgence_n to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o say_v gregory_n to_o henry_n to_o encourage_v he_o and_o the_o christian_n to_o war_n against_o the_o saracen_n whoever_o do_v read_v the_o history_n of_o that_o gregory_n and_o his_o fierce_a persecution_n of_o the_o say_a emperor_n to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n even_o as_o his_o own_o historian_n platina_n and_o baronius_n more_o bias_v to_o he_o do_v report_n will_v more_o easy_o believe_v that_o gregory_n shall_v favour_v the_o turk_n against_o henry_n then_o uphold_a henry_n against_o any_o adversary_n if_o ever_o you_o have_v any_o tincture_n of_o the_o history_n of_o pope_n hildebrand_n or_o gregory_n the_o seven_o how_o can_v you_o fall_v into_o so_o ridiculous_a a_o equivocation_n as_o to_o conceive_v he_o grant_v indulgence_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n henry_n iii_o if_o you_o do_v read_v my_o discourse_n speak_v express_o of_o a_o indulgence_n grant_v to_o those_o that_o will_v fight_v again_o the_o emperor_n how_o come_v you_o to_o pervert_v the_o narrative_a so_o absurd_o as_o if_o i_o shall_v have_v speak_v of_o a_o indulgence_n give_v in_o favour_n of_o that_o emperor_n you_o say_v that_o the_o indulgence_n i_o speak_v of_o nor_o any_o other_o to_o any_o such_o purpose_n be_v not_o grant_v by_o gregory_n the_o seven_o but_o by_o vrban_a the_o second_o read_v the_o place_n i_o quote_v of_o baronius_n upon_o the_o year_n 1084._o numb_a 15_o there_o you_o shall_v find_v gregory_n the_o seven_o employ_v anselm_n bishop_n of_o luca_n to_o publish_v indulgence_n for_o all_o those_o that_o will_v fight_v in_o his_o quarrel_n against_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o three_o and_o continue_v your_o strange_a equivocation_n you_o speak_v of_o indulgence_n give_v by_o vrban_a the_o second_o to_o the_o same_o henry_n the_o three_o but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o he_o he_o give_v they_o but_o to_o alexius_n emperor_n of_o constantinople_n as_o baronius_n relate_v at_o the_o year_n 1095._o numb_a 3._o you_o speak_v of_o indulgence_n grant_v by_o leo_n the_o three_o anno_fw-la 847._o but_o it_o be_v not_o leo_n the_o three_o but_o leo_n the_o four_o that_o reign_v then_o and_o when_o suarez_n find_v not_o he_o nor_o any_o other_o give_v indulgence_n of_o so_o ancient_a date_n sure_o i_o be_o you_o never_o find_v they_o upon_o any_o warrantable_a account_n to_o one_o notice_n of_o indulgence_n i_o will_v help_v you_o out_o of_o baronius_n precede_v that_o i_o mention_v of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o give_v to_o they_o that_o will_v fight_v against_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o three_o in_o the_o same_o year_n 1084._o which_o i_o allow_v you_o to_o take_v for_o the_o genuine_a origin_n of_o your_o present_a practice_n of_o indulgence_n give_v by_o profane_a cardinal_n creature_n of_o pope_n guibert_n call_v clement_n the_o three_o competitor_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o of_o which_o kind_n of_o cardinal_n baronius_n in_o the_o foresay_a year_n numb_a 9_o give_v this_o account_n erant_fw-la enim_fw-la cives_fw-la romani_fw-la vxorati_fw-la sive_fw-la concubinarii_fw-la barbati_fw-la &_o mitrati_fw-la peregrinis_fw-la oratoribus_fw-la praecipue_fw-la vero_fw-la multitudini_fw-la rusticanae_fw-la longobardorum_fw-la mentientes_fw-la asserentes_fw-la se_fw-la cardinal_n presbyteros_fw-la esse_fw-la quique_fw-la oblationibus_fw-la receptis_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la &_o remissionem_fw-la omnium_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la usu_fw-la nefari●_n impudenter_fw-la praestabant_fw-la hi_o &_o occasione_n custodiendae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consurgentes_fw-la intempestae_fw-la noctis_fw-la silentio_fw-la intra_fw-la &_o citra_fw-la candem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la impunè_fw-la homicidia_fw-la rapinas_fw-la varia_fw-la stupra_fw-la &_o diversa_fw-la latrocinia_fw-la exercebant_fw-la there_o be_v say_v he_o roman_z citizens_z either_o marry_v or_o retain_v concubine_n shave_a and_o wear_a mitre_n impose_v upon_o foreign_a ambassador_n but_o especial_o upon_o the_o rude_a multitude_n of_o longobard_n that_o they_o be_v presbyter_n cardinal_n and_o who_o receive_v offering_n do_v impudent_o bestow_v indulgence_n and_o remission_n of_o all_o sin_n these_o under_o pretext_n of_o defend_v the_o church_n rise_v in_o the_o deep_a silence_n of_o the_o night_n do_v commit_v within_o and_o about_o the_o church_n without_o hindrance_n horrible_a murder_n robbery_n and_o diverse_a sort_n of_o whoredom_n and_o luxury_n who_o be_v better_a pope_n or_o better_a man_n guibert_n and_o his_o cardinal_n or_o hildebrand_n and_o his_o as_o i_o do_v not_o know_v so_o i_o will_v not_o dispute_v but_o conclude_v that_o such_o indulgence_n as_o these_o be_v give_v in_o rome_n by_o relation_n of_o their_o own_o hire_a historian_n and_o let_v the_o reader_n see_v how_o unhappy_a mr._n
the_o ancient_a ●orm_n pag._n 49._o chap._n viii_o how_o far_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o romish_a in_o matter_n of_o ordination_n and_o wherein_o they_o do_v differ_v and_o how_o absurd_a the_o pretention_n of_o the_o romanist_n be_v that_o our_o difference_n herein_o with_o they_o shall_v annul_v our_o order_n pag._n 57_o chap._n ix_o that_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n since_o the_o reformation_n be_v much_o more_o sure_a and_o unquestionable_a in_o the_o english_a church_n then_o in_o the_o romish_a pag._n 6●_n chap._n x._o a_o further_a cause_n of_o nullity_n discover_v in_o the_o election_n of_o pope_n clement_n the_o 8_o the_o pag._n 75._o chap._n xi_o nullity_n declare_v in_o the_o popedom_n of_o paul_n the_o 5_o the_o and_z other_o following_z pag._n 81._o chap._n xii_o of_o the_o large_a extent_n of_o christian_a religion_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n pag._n 89._o chap._n xiii_o of_o the_o several_a large_a and_o flourish_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o eastern_a country_n not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n pag._n 98._o chap._n fourteen_o of_o the_o jacobite_n armenian_n maronites_n and_o indian_n pag._n 110._o chap._n xv._o a_o reflection_n upon_o the_o content_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n preccede_v and_o upon_o the_o pride_n and_o cruelty_n of_o the_o romanist_n in_o despise_v and_o condemn_v all_o christian_a society_n not_o subject_a to_o their_o jurisdiction_n pag._n 116._o chap._n xvi_o inference_n from_o the_o doctrine_n precede_v of_o this_o who'e_n treatise_n against_o the_o several_a objection_n of_o n._n n._n pag._n 121._o chap._n xvii_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n vindicate_v from_o the_o slanderous_a aspersion_n of_o n._n n._n and_o other-romanists_n pag._n 130._o chap._n xviii_o a_o view_n of_o n._n n._n his_o discourse_n upon_o transubstantiation_n and_o upon_o the_o affinity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o grecian_a pag._n 132._o chap._n xix_o n._n n._n his_o book_n entitle_v the_o bleed_a iphigenia_n examine_v his_o abusive_a language_n bestow_v therein_o upon_o person_n of_o honour_n and_o his_o censure_n upon_o the_o king_n majesty_n reprehend_v pag._n 140._o chap._n xx._n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o subject_n to_o raise_v arm_n and_o to_o go_v to_o war_n with_o their_o fellow_n subject_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o prince_n the_o doctrine_n of_o kill_a man_n and_o make_v war_n by_o way_n of_o prevention_n and_o on_o pretext_n of_o raligion_n confute_v pag._n 148._o chap._n xxi_o a_o conclusion_n of_o my_o discourse_n with_o n._n n._n with_o a_o friendly_a admonition_n to_o he_o pag._n 171._o chap._n xxii_o a_o check_n to_o i._o e._n his_o scandalous_a libel_n and_o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o his_o false_a and_o slanderous_a report_n of_o it_o pag._n 178._o the_o second_o part_n chap._n i._n a_o anatomy_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o genius_n and_o drift_n appear_v in_o his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o my_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n pag._n 1._o chap._n ii_o a_o vindication_n of_o several_a saint_n and_o worthy_a soul_n our_o ancestor_n from_o the_o sentence_n of_o damnation_n pass_v upon_o they_o by_o i._o s._n pag._n 6._o chap._n iii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o cold_a defence_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o church_n examine_v pag._n 14._o chap._n iu._n that_o protestant_n have_v a_o great_a security_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n then_o papist_n have_v pag._n 19_o chap._n v._o mr._n i._o s._n his_o prolix_a excursion_n about_o the_o pope_n authority_n requisite_a to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a scripture_n declare_v to_o be_v impertinent_a and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n clear_v from_o the_o confusion_n he_o put_v upon_o it_o pag._n 27._o chap._n vi_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n pretend_a infallibility_n from_o the_o censure_n of_o blasphemy_n declare_v to_o be_v weak_a and_o impertinent_a his_o particular_a opinion_n censure_v for_o heretical_a by_o his_o own_o party_n pag._n 33._o chap._n vii_o our_o adversary_n corruption_n of_o scripture_n detect_v pag._n 41._o chap._n viii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o horrible_a impiety_n against_o the_o sacred_a apostle_n and_o malicious_a imposture_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n reprehend_v pag._n 46._o chap._n ix_o our_o adversarte_n pretention_n to_o prescription_n and_o miracle_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n reject_v his_o imposture_n upon_o i_o and_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n discover_v further_a pag._n 53._o chap._n x._o a_o check_n to_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o insolent_a thesis_n prefix_v for_o title_n to_o the_o 8_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n and_o his_o own_o argument_n retort_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n pag._n 59_o chap._n xi_o a_o refutation_n of_o several_a other_o engagement_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n in_o that_o 8_o the_o chapter_n pag._n 66._o chap._n xii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o answer_n to_o my_o objection_n against_o the_o pope_n in_o fallibility_n refute_v his_o defence_n of_o bellarmin_n of_o the_o general_n council_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o costerus_n declare_v to_o be_v weak_a and_o vain_a pag._n 70._o chap._n xiii_o our_o adversary_n foul_a and_o great_a circle_n commit_v pretend_v to_o rid_v his_o pretention_n of_o infallibility_n from_o the_o censure_n of_o a_o circle_n his_o many_o absurdity_n and_o great_a ignorance_n in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o that_o attemt_fw-mi discover_v a_o better_a resolution_n of_o faith_n propose_v according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n pag._n 77._o chap._n fourteen_o a_o reflection_n upon_o the_o perverse_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n propose_v to_o we_o by_o mr._n i._n s._n and_o the_o pernicious_a and_o most_o dangerous_a consequence_n of_o it_o pag._n 85._o chap._n xv._o mr._n i._o s._n his_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n declare_v to_o be_v vain_a their_o pretence_n to_o a_o monarchical_a power_n over_o all_o christian_n whether_o in_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a prove_v to_o be_v unjust_a and_o tyrannical_a pag._n 92._o chap._n xvi_o how_o false_o mr._n i._o s._n affirm_v the_o irish_a do_v not_o suffer_v by_o the_o pope_n prohibit_v they_o to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o remonstrance_n of_o fidelity_n propose_v to_o they_o pag._n 100_o chap._n xvii_o the_o complaint_n of_o papist_n against_o our_o king_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n he_o demand_v from_o his_o subject_n declare_v to_o be_v unjust_a pag._n 103._o chap._n xviii_o our_o adversary_n essay_n in_o favour_n of_o transubstantiation_n examine_v his_o challenge_n for_o solve_v two_o syllogism_n answer_v pag._n 110._o chap._n xix_o several_a answer_n to_o my_o argument_n against_o transubstantiation_n refute_v pag._n 118._o chap._n xx._n ancient_a school_n man_n declare_v transubstantiation_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n mr._n i._o s._n his_o great_a boast_n of_o find_v in_o my_o check_n to_o their_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n a_o prejudice_n to_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n declare_v to_o be_v void_a of_o sense_n and_o ground_n pag._n 126._o chap._n xxi_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o weak_a defence_n of_o their_o half_a communion_n confute_v pag._n 135._o chap._n xxii_o the_o roman_a worship_n of_o image_n declare_v to_o be_v sinful_a pag._n 142._o chap._n xxiii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o defence_n of_o the_o romish_a worship_n of_o image_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o idolatry_n confute_v the_o miserable_a condition_n of_o the_o vulgar_a and_o unhappy_a engagement_n of_o the_o learned_a among_o romanist_n touch_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n discover_v pag._n 148._o chap._n xxiv_o our_o adversary_n reply_v to_o my_o exception_n against_o their_o invocation_n of_o saint_n declare_v to_o be_v impertinent_a pag._n 159._o chap._n xxv_o a_o great_a stock_n of_o fault_n and_o absurdity_n discover_v in_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o defence_n of_o purgatory_n pag._n 168._o chap._n xxvi_o the_o argument_n for_o purgatory_n take_v from_o the_o 12_o the_o of_o s._n matth._n v._n 32._o solve_v 173._o chap._n xxvii_o the_o attemt_a of_o our_o adversary_n to_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n a_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n declare_v to_o be_v vain_a pag._n 185._o chap._n xxviii_o how_o weak_a be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o grand_a engine_n of_o indulgence_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n pag._n 188._o chap._n xxix_o the_o unhappy_a success_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o great_a boast_n of_o skill_n in_o history_n touch_v the_o antiquity_n of_o indulgence_n discover_v pag_n 195._o chap._n xxx_o of_o
the_o strange_a and_o absurd_a term_n use_v in_o the_o grant_v of_o indulgence_n and_o the_o immoderate_a profuseness_n wherewith_o and_o slight_a cause_n for_o which_o they_o be_v grant_v pag._n 199._o chap._n xxxi_o the_o dismal_a unhapiness_n of_o the_o romish_a people_n in_o have_v their_o liturgy_n in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a to_o they_o pag._n 212._o chap._n xxxii_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o prohibit_v the_o read_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o people_n and_o their_o common_a pretence_n of_o sect_n and_o division_n arise_v among_o protestant_n refute_v pag_n 216._o chap._n xxxiii_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o engagement_n touch_v the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o confession_n confute_v pag._n 219._o chap._n xxxiv_o a_o reflection_n upon_o the_o many_o fallacy_n impertinency_n absurdity_n and_o hallucination_n of_o mr._n i.s._n his_o book_n which_o may_v justify_v a_o resolution_n of_o not_o mispending_a time_n in_o return_v any_o further_a reply_n to_o such_o writing_n and_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a treatise_n exhort_v he_o to_o a_o consideration_n of_o his_o miserable_a condition_n in_o deceive_a himself_o and_o other_o with_o vanity_n pag._n 222._o true_a catholic_a &_o apostolic_a faith_n maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n i._o be_v a_o reply_n to_o n._n n._n his_o two_o book_n the_o one_o entitle_v the_o bleed_a iphigenia_n the_o other_o the_o doleful_a fall_n of_o etc._n etc._n with_o a_o reflection_n upon_o i._n e._n his_o libel_n entitle_v a_o sovereign_n counterpoison_v etc._n etc._n and_o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o calumny_n of_o they_o and_o of_o their_o party_n chap._n i._n a_o summary_n account_n of_o the_o content_n of_o n._n n._n his_o two_o book_n and_o a_o distribution_n of_o the_o point_n to_o be_v handle_v in_o relation_n to_o they_o a_o useful_a proposal_n be_v make_v in_o the_o senate_n of_o athens_n by_o a_o person_n of_o ill_a repute_n those_o wise_a senator_n accord_v the_o same_o shall_v be_v tender_v by_o another_o of_o a_o clear_a fame_n that_o it_o may_v carry_v by_o his_o authority_n more_o weight_n and_o be_v the_o better_o accept_v the_o like_a seem_v to_o have_v be_v practise_v with_o i_o by_o my_o brethren_n of_o the_o romish_a communion_n reason_n of_o discontent_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o great_a affront_n of_o it_o be_v present_v to_o i_o by_o j._n e._n in_o his_o book_n or_o libel_v entitle_v a_o sovereign_n counterpoison_v etc._n etc._n they_o just_o suspect_v that_o i_o will_v slight_v that_o onset_n out_o of_o a_o dislike_n to_o the_o person_n because_o of_o his_o rude_a and_o passionate_a expression_n have_v take_v care_n that_o the_o same_o and_o other_o motive_n of_o discontent_n shall_v be_v propose_v by_o another_o of_o great_a repute_n a_o age_a and_o grave_a prelate_n renown_v for_o learning_n and_o virtue_n and_o one_o much_o respect_v by_o i_o he_o be_v please_v to_o give_v i_o mark_n of_o former_a acquaintance_n for_o know_v he_o but_o without_o commission_n of_o further_a discover_v he_o to_o the_o reader_n then_o under_o the_o character_n of_o n._n n._n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o preface_n which_o come_v forth_o in_o a_o separate_a tractate_n he_o tell_v i_o how_o much_o he_o be_v surprise_v and_o trouble_v see_v a_o copy_n he_o receive_v in_o print_n from_o london_n of_o my_o declaration_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o paper_n indeed_o say_v he_o give_v i_o a_o great_a heaviness_n of_o heart_n for_o i_o love_v the_o man_n dear_o for_o his_o amiable_a nature_n and_o excellent_a part_n and_o esteem_v he_o both_o a_o pious_a person_n and_o a_o learned_a and_o so_o do_v all_o that_o know_v he_o and_o after_o bemoan_v my_o fall_n as_o he_o call_v it_o from_o a_o little_a heaven_n the_o state_n of_o religion_n wherein_o say_v he_o for_o a_o time_n he_o shine_v like_o a_o little_a star_n in_o virtue_n and_o learning_n he_o declare_v his_o anger_n against_o i_o and_o purpose_n of_o serve_v i_o not_o with_o the_o water_n of_o shiloah_n that_o go_v soft_o but_o with_o those_o of_o rezin_n more_o tumultuous_a to_o wash_v i_o from_o the_o stain_n of_o heresy_n and_o after_o this_o leave_v i_o he_o fall_v abrupt_o on_o lament_v the_o misery_n of_o ireland_n and_o complain_v of_o injury_n do_v to_o the_o native_n of_o it_o and_o justify_v their_o proceed_n in_o their_o late_a insurrection_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v to_o be_v call_v rebellion_n in_o this_o he_o spend_v that_o tractate_n and_o then_o proceed_v to_o the_o great_a book_n design_v against_o i_o give_v to_o it_o this_o title_n the_o doleful_a fall_n of_o andrew_n sall_n jesuit_n of_o the_o four_o vow_n from_o the_o roman_n catholic_n and_o apostolic_a faith_n lament_v by_o his_o constant_a friend_n with_o a_o open_a rebuke_v of_o his_o embrace_v the_o confession_n contain_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o book_n he_o begin_v with_o a_o rhetorical_a or_o satirical_a exclamation_n against_o my_o resolution_n of_o embrace_v the_o say_a confession_n and_o proceed_v to_o relate_v at_o large_a the_o virtue_n and_o learning_n of_o saint_n hierom_n saint_n augustine_n saint_n ambrose_n and_o other_o holy_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o company_n he_o say_v i_o have_v forsake_v and_o then_o make_v a_o large_a list_n of_o heretic_n of_o all_o age_n begin_v with_o luciser_n who_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o first_o heretic_n before_o man_n creation_n and_o so_o come_v down_o all_o along_o by_o cain_n lamech_v the_o giant_n cham_n jannes_n and_o jambre_n with_o other_o mention_v in_o holy_a writ_n to_o these_o of_o the_o latter_a time_n relate_v their_o execrable_a vice_n and_o error_n of_o all_o which_o he_o will_v have_v i_o to_o be_v guilty_a and_o a_o associate_n of_o those_o heretic_n for_o embrace_v the_o confession_n contain_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o pretend_v to_o discuss_v and_o censure_v some_o of_o they_o as_o also_o some_o part_n of_o my_o declaration_n and_o make_v a_o scandalous_a narrative_n of_o the_o english_a reformation_n and_o final_o conclude_v with_o a_o fervent_a exhortation_n to_o i_o to_o return_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o this_o scheme_n i_o deliver_v of_o that_o book_n the_o prudent_a reader_n may_v judge_v how_o tedious_a a_o labour_n it_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o every_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o and_o how_o impertinent_a i_o be_v so_o far_o from_o what_o he_o suppose_v i_o to_o be_v and_o from_o be_v concern_v in_o the_o heresy_n and_o for_o the_o heretic_n he_o mention_n yet_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n the_o sacred_a tie_n of_o friendship_n which_o he_o profess_v for_o i_o and_o the_o good_a intention_n i_o be_o to_o believe_v he_o have_v in_o his_o writing_n and_o above_o all_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n oblige_v i_o to_o undeceive_v he_o and_o other_o that_o may_v be_v of_o his_o opinion_n in_o the_o great_a and_o gross_a mistake_n he_o be_v in_o touch_v my_o condition_n and_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o communion_n i_o have_v embrace_v i_o will_v therefore_o declare_v first_o that_o the_o religion_n we_o profess_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o true_a primitive_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a religion_n teach_v by_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o practise_v in_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n by_o the_o primitive_a church_n second_o that_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o heresy_n n._n n._n attribute_n to_o we_o and_o his_o brethren_n practise_v such_o calumny_n do_v manifest_v it_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o move_v they_o three_o that_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o evangelical_n doctrine_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v not_o so_o few_o or_o despicable_a nor_o the_o romish_a faction_n so_o considerable_a as_o they_o will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v four_o and_o last_o i_o will_v refute_v some_o seditious_a doctrine_n deliver_v in_o his_o first_o book_n that_o be_v a_o preface_n to_o the_o second_o and_o will_v conclude_v with_o a_o check_n to_o j._n e._n his_o calumny_n and_o barbarous_a abuse_n fasten_v on_o the_o protestant_a church_n chap._n ii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o it_o be_v true_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a you_o begin_v the_o first_o chapter_n of_o your_o book_n against_o i_o n._n n._n under_o this_o character_n you_o will_v be_v name_v you_o begin_v i_o say_v with_o a_o rhetorical_a exclamation_n in_o these_o term_n o_o sall_n tell_v we_o what_o domincering_n spirit_n of_o darkness_n what_o black_a temptation_n have_v draw_v you_o out_o
perspicacity_n in_o strike_v the_o nail_n in_o the_o head_n this_o indeed_o be_v that_o stumble_a stone_n and_o rock_n of_o offence_n this_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o i_o may_v say_v the_o only_a cause_n of_o that_o irreconcilable_a disunion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o we_o we_o know_v by_o certain_a and_o well_o authorize_v 152._o authorize_v tortura_fw-la torti_fw-la pag._n 152._o record_n that_o pope_n paul_n the_o four_o offer_v queen_n elizabeth_n to_o approve_v of_o the_o reformation_n if_o the_o queen_n will_v acknowledge_v his_o primacy_n and_o the_o reformation_n from_o he_o and_o he_o be_v dead_a his_o successor_n plus_fw-fr the_fw-fr 4._o prosecute_v the_o same_o as_o appear_v by_o his_o letter_n write_v the_o 5_o 1560._o 5_o cambden_n anno_fw-la 1560._o of_o 5._o of_o twisden_n h._n vind._n cap._n ix_o n._n 5._o may_n 1560._o and_o send_v by_o vincentius_n parpalia_n offer_v to_o confirm_v the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o english_a church_n if_o she_o will_v acknowledge_v his_o supremacy_n this_o be_v tell_v by_o sir_n roger_n twisden_n as_o he_o relate_v himself_o to_o a_o italian_a gentleman_n verse_v in_o public_a affair_n together_o with_o the_o ground_n on_o which_o he_o speak_v it_o well_o say_v the_o gentleman_n if_o this_o be_v hear_v in_o rome_n among_o religious_a man_n it_o will_v never_o gain_v credit_n but_o with_o such_o as_o have_v in_o their_o hand_n the_o maneggi_fw-la della_fw-it corte_fw-la the_o management_n of_o the_o court_n affair_n it_o may_v be_v hold_v true_a and_o indeed_o su●h_o as_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o that_o court_n may_v easy_o believe_v that_o if_o this_o great_a point_n of_o the_o supremacy_n the_o foundation_n of_o their_o power_n and_o grandeur_n be_v agree_v upon_o they_o will_v easy_o wink_v at_o other_o dissension_n whereof_o we_o have_v a_o pregnant_a testimony_n from_o bellarmin_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la cap._n 20._o assert_v that_o even_o such_o as_o have_v no_o interior_a faith_n nor_o any_o christian_a virtue_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n provide_v they_o do_v but_o outward_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n though_o it_o be_v only_o for_o some_o temporal_a interest_n so_o ready_a they_o be_v in_o rome_n to_o embrace_v all_o sort_n of_o man_n provide_v they_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n this_o be_v establish_v all_o be_v well_o be_v deny_v the_o best_a of_o man_n and_o sound_a believer_n in_o christ_n must_v be_v damn_v heretic_n by_o sentence_n of_o that_o court._n but_o i_o shall_v declare_v sufficient_o in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n of_o the_o 2_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n how_o vain_a the_o pretence_n of_o suarez_n and_o his_o party_n be_v to_o make_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n a_o article_n of_o save_a faith_n how_o unjust_a and_o tyrannical_a a_o usurpation_n it_o be_v how_o far_o the_o best_a pope_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v from_o pretend_v to_o it_o and_o more_o from_o press_v it_o upon_o christian_n as_o a_o article_n of_o save_v faith_n and_o indeed_o it_o must_v appear_v strange_a to_o any_o impartial_a judgement_n that_o the_o system_fw-la of_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o three_o creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n which_o gain_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a to_o the_o church_n first_o call_v so_o shall_v not_o suffice_v to_o make_v a_o church_n catholic_n in_o all_o time_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o england_n profess_v all_o those_o article_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o true_o catholic_n though_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n not_o contain_v in_o the_o foresay_a system_n nor_o ever_o own_a by_o the_o church_n first_o call_v catholic_n as_o hereafter_o will_v be_v prove_v as_o to_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o universality_n consist_v in_o take_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o a_o common_a reason_n or_o rule_v of_o belief_n how_o can_v any_o pretend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o be_v deficient_a herein_o have_v ever_o protest_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v the_o prime_n and_o only_a rule_n of_o its_o belief_n while_o the_o roman_a church_n deny_v to_o stand_v to_o this_o rule_n as_o unable_a to_o make_v out_o all_o the_o belief_n it_o will_v force_v upon_o we_o what_o suarez_n pretend_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n want_v a_o rule_n infallible_a for_o know_v which_o be_v true_a scripture_n and_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o which_o they_o conceive_v to_o have_v themselves_o in_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n i_o shall_v declare_v in_o the_o eight_o chap._n of_o the_o 2_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n how_o vain_a it_o be_v we_o have_v in_o universal_a tradition_n and_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n mean_v sufficient_o certain_a for_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a scripture_n and_o which_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o it_o in_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o for_o other_o less_o necessary_a if_o there_o be_v obscurity_n and_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o our_o writer_n so_o be_v there_o among_o they_o nor_o can_v their_o pretend_a infallibility_n ever_o make_v they_o agree_v nay_o among_o the_o best_a and_o wise_a father_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v always_o a_o great_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a without_o breach_n of_o catholic_a and_o christian_a union_n now_o concern_v the_o three_o kind_n of_o union_n or_o universality_n consist_v in_o a_o hierarchical_a order_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n etc._n etc._n suarez_n be_v much_o mistake_v in_o say_v that_o we_o have_v they_o not_o true_a and_o legal_a i_o will_v declare_v at_o large_a from_o the_o five_o chapter_n follow_v that_o we_o have_v all_o the_o security_n they_o have_v of_o a_o legal_a sucession_n and_o true_a ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n it_o be_v their_o concern_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v deficient_a herein_o for_o any_o defect_n conceive_v in_o our_o hierarchy_n will_v reflect_v upon_o they_o final_o touch_v the_o four_o manner_n of_o universality_n signify_v by_o the_o name_n catholic_n that_o a_o church_n or_o faith_n so_o call_v shall_v be_v extend_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n suarez_n exceed_v much_o in_o deny_v this_o property_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o faith_n profess_v in_o it_o say_v it_o pass_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o british_a land_n to_o which_o be_v contrary_a that_o grave_n and_o modest_a testimony_n of_o king_n james_n relate_v by_o suarez_n in_o the_o same_o place_n chapter_n xv_o n_z 6._o nos_fw-la dei_fw-la benesicio_fw-la nec_fw-la numero_fw-la nec_fw-la dignitate_fw-la ita_fw-la sumus_fw-la contemnendi_fw-la qui_fw-la ●●ono_fw-la vicinis_fw-la nostris_fw-la exemplo_fw-la praeire_fw-la possimis_fw-la quandoquidem_fw-la christiani_n orbis_fw-la omniumque_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la ordinum_fw-la inde_fw-la à_fw-la regibus_fw-la liberisque_fw-la principibus_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la insimae_fw-la conditionis_fw-la homines_fw-la pars_fw-la propè_fw-la media_fw-la in_o nostram_fw-la religionem_fw-la consensit_fw-la we_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o despicable_a either_o for_o number_n or_o dignity_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v a_o good_a example_n to_o our_o neighbour_n whereas_o near_o the_o one_o half_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o all_o order_n of_o people_n in_o it_o from_o king_n and_o sovereign_n prince_n to_o the_o mean_a sort_n of_o person_n have_v already_o embrace_v our_o religion_n i_o shall_v declare_v hereafter_o from_o the_o xix_o chapter_n descend_v to_o particular_n that_o this_o say_n of_o king_n james_n be_v both_o true_a and_o modest_a and_o that_o more_o than_o the_o one_o half_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o unity_n of_o faith_n sufficient_a to_o render_v they_o catholic_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v cease_v brag_v of_o her_o extent_n be_v now_o come_v so_o short_a of_o that_o latitude_n which_o make_v she_o swell_v to_o the_o contemt_a of_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n now_o far_o exceed_v she_o in_o number_n and_o lustre_n of_o prince_n and_o kingdom_n embrace_v the_o faith_n profess_v in_o they_o suarez_n prevent_v a_o check_n to_o his_o argument_n from_o this_o discovery_n in_o the_o xvi_o chapter_n num_fw-la 4._o of_o his_o say_a book_n premise_n that_o this_o general_a extension_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o extension_n either_o by_o right_n or_o by_o actual_a possession_n and_o though_o the_o latter_a be_v deficient_a the_o former_a of_o right_n can_v want_v christ_n have_v command_v that_o his_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v to_o all_o the_o world_n but_o how_o can_v suarez_n pretend_v that_o this_o right_n shall_v belong_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n rather_o than_o to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whereas_o this_o latter_a preach_v only_o for_o object_n of_o
that_o the_o word_n of_o their_o pontifical_a accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la offerendi_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la provivis_fw-la &_o defunctis_fw-la be_v contain_v in_o those_o other_o of_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o last_o supper_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la in_o meam_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o be_v notorious_o weak_a gratis_o dicitur_fw-la gratis_o negatur_fw-la as_o it_o be_v say_v without_o ground_n so_o it_o may_v be_v deny_v without_o regard_n now_o as_o to_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n 9_o ordination_n bellar._n de_fw-fr sacramento_n ordinis_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 9_o bellarmine_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o agree_v in_o take_v for_o form_n the_o word_n that_o be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o minister_n when_o he_o exhibit_v the_o sensible_a sign_n or_o matter_n he_o add_v that_o though_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o mention_v particular_a word_n to_o be_v pronounce_v in_o each_o order_n yet_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n ambrose_n jerome_n and_o augustine_n do_v express_o teach_v that_o a_o form_n of_o word_n suitable_a to_o each_o order_n be_v require_v and_o be_v practise_v so_o in_o the_o ancient_a roman_a ordinal_n and_o so_o be_v practise_v to_o this_o day_n in_o the_o ordinal_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o in_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o his_o time_n be_v dispose_v according_a to_o the_o more_o qualify_v ancient_a ordinal_n use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n the_o bishop_n lay_v his_o hand_n several_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o kneel_v before_o he_o say_v take_v thou_o authority_n to_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n commit_v unto_o thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n after_o deliver_v to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o say_v take_v thou_o authority_n to_o read_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o to_o preach_v the_o same_o if_o thou_o be_v thereto_o license_v by_o the_o bishop_n himself_o in_o ordain_v priest_n the_o bishop_n with_o the_o priest_n present_v do_v lay_v their_o hand_n several_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o every_o one_o that_o receive_v the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n the_o receiver_n kneel_v and_o the_o bishop_n say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o office_n and_o work_n of_o a_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o commit_v unto_o thou_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o our_o hand_n who_o sin_n thou_o do_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n thou_o do_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v and_o be_v thou_o a_o faithful_a dispenser_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n the_o archbishop_z and_z bishop_n present_a do_v lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o elect_a bishop_n kneel_v before_o they_o and_o the_o archbishop_n say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o office_n and_o work_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o commit_v unto_o thou_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o our_o hand_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n amen_n and_o remember_v that_o thou_o stir_v up_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o this_o imposition_n of_o our_o hand_n for_o god_n have_v not_o give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n but_o of_o power_n and_o love_n and_o soberness_n the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v thus_o exact_a in_o observe_v the_o form_n and_o matter_n essential_a to_o holy_a order_n it_o appear_v how_o rash_a and_o false_a be_v kellison_n in_o say_v that_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n neither_o matter_n nor_o form_n of_o ordination_n be_v use_v how_o vain_a and_o windy_a 3●9_n windy_a fitz_n symons_n britonomach_n p._n 3●9_n fitz_n symons_n his_o flourish_n cu_z in_o sacramento_n mutatur_fw-la materia_fw-la forma_fw-la intentio_fw-la faciendi_fw-la quod_fw-la facit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la ejus_fw-la essentiam_fw-la conficiunt_fw-la desinit_fw-la esse_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la omnium_fw-la qui_fw-la ante_fw-la te_fw-la vixerunt_fw-la tecum_fw-la vivunt_fw-la &_o post_fw-la te_fw-la victuri_fw-la sunt_fw-la orthodox_n sentientium_fw-la consensu_fw-la when_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o matter_n form_n and_o intention_n of_o do_v what_o the_o church_n do_v which_o make_v up_o the_o essence_n of_o it_o be_v change_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o catholic_n that_o live_v before_o you_o do_v live_v with_o you_o and_o after_o you_o shall_v live_v true_o fitz_n symons_n seem_v to_o study_v more_o how_o his_o phrase_n shall_v be_v round_o and_o sound_a then_o to_o furnish_v it_o with_o sense_n and_o truth_n so_o as_o without_o injury_n i_o may_v say_v here_o of_o he_o that_o sine_fw-la ment_fw-la sonum_fw-la set_v aside_o what_o belong_v to_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n who_o tell_v fitz_n symons_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n have_v not_o a_o intention_n to_o do_v what_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n do_v and_o though_o their_o intention_n be_v to_o do_v express_o what_o their_o own_o church_n of_o england_n do_v and_o not_o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n bellarmin_n declare_v that_o not_o to_o be_v a_o alteration_n annul_v the_o sacrament_n non_fw-la est_fw-la opus_fw-la intendere_fw-la quod_fw-la facit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la facit_fw-la vera_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la illa_fw-la sit_fw-la vel_fw-la quod_fw-la christus_fw-la instituit_fw-la vel_fw-la quod_fw-la faciunt_fw-la christiani_n imo_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la intendat_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la aliqua_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la particularis_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la ut_fw-la genevensis_fw-la &_o intendat_fw-la non_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la respondeo_fw-la etiam_fw-la id_fw-la sufficere_fw-la nam_fw-la qui_fw-la intendit_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la genevensis_fw-la intendit_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la universalis_fw-la it_o be_v not_o necessary_a say_v bellarmin_n to_o have_v a_o intention_n of_o do_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v but_o what_o the_o true_a church_n which_o soever_o that_o be_v nay_o if_o he_o shall_v intend_v to_o do_v what_o some_o particular_a false_a church_n which_o he_o think_v to_o be_v true_a as_o that_o of_o geneva_n say_v the_o cardinal_n even_o that_o will_v suffice_v for_o he_o that_o intend_v to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n 27._o geneva_n bellar._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la in_o gen._n lib._n 2._o c._n 27._o do_v intend_v to_o do_v what_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v of_o which_o he_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o geneva_n to_o be_v a_o member_n then_o fitz_n symons_n be_v mistake_v when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o suppose_a alteration_n in_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n do_v annul_v the_o sacrament_n by_o consent_n of_o all_o catholic_n if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v bellarmine_n to_o be_v put_v out_o of_o that_o number_n not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o extravagancy_n in_o make_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n a_o essential_a constitute_v of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o of_o the_o dismal_a confusion_n and_o discomfort_n he_o bring_v upon_o his_o proselyte_n by_o make_v the_o effect_n of_o sacrament_n depend_v upon_o the_o foresay_a intention_n whereof_o no_o man_n receive_v a_o sacrament_n can_v have_v a_o full_a certainty_n the_o word_n of_o the_o minister_n i_o can_v hear_v and_o his_o action_n i_o can_v see_v but_o of_o his_o intention_n i_o can_v never_o be_v entire_o assure_v then_o if_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o order_n necessary_a and_o essential_a be_v retain_v in_o our_o church_n as_o we_o have_v see_v and_o no_o reasonable_a doubt_n be_v leave_v of_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o minister_n to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v which_o according_a to_o bellarmin_n supposition_n now_o mention_v be_v sufficient_a how_o come_v fitz_n symons_n to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n and_o intention_n of_o our_o minister_n such_o alteration_n be_v make_v as_o annul_v our_o sacrament_n chap._n vii_o how_o far_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a c●●rch_n declare_v in_o t●e_v four_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o how_o much_o the_o form_n prescribe_v by_o t●e_v roman_n pontifical_a of_o this_o time_n differ_v from_o the_o ancient_a f●rm_n as_o in_o many_o other_o point_n so_o in_o this_o of_o crdination_n especial_o i_o can_v but_o admire_v how_o bold_a the_o romish_a writer_n be_v in_o impose_v upon_o the_o ignorant_a that_o themselves_o be_v the_o observer_n of_o antiquity_n and_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o contemner_n of_o it_o whereas_o indeed_o
in_o the_o library_n of_o dublin_n university_n where_o it_o be_v order_v that_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n assist_v to_o help_v he_o do_v place_n the_o book_n over_o the_o neck_n and_o the_o shoulder_n of_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v without_o say_v any_o word_n one_o of_o the_o chaplain_n of_o the_o bishop_n elect_v kneel_v behind_o he_o and_o hold_v the_o book_n until_o it_o be_v give_v to_o his_o hand_n and_o then_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v and_o the_o other_o bishop_n assist_v he_o do_v touch_n with_o both_o their_o hand_n the_o head_n of_o the_o bishop_n elect_v say_v accipe_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o supposition_n that_o the_o mode_n of_o place_v the_o book_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o this_o ordination_n certain_o the_o form_n prescribe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o particular_a be_v very_o decent_a and_o apposite_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o this_o action_n the_o archbishop_n or_o other_o bishop_n consecrate_v deliver_v the_o bible_n to_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v say_v give_v heed_n unto_o read_v exhortation_n and_o doctrine_n with_o other_o wholesome_a admonition_n touch_v his_o pastoral_a duty_n now_o touch_v the_o essential_a part_n of_o this_o ordination_n which_o do_v consist_v in_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o matter_n and_o the_o benediction_n or_o word_n pronounce_v by_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v as_o form_n the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v exact_a in_o observe_v the_o form_n prescribe_v by_o the_o foresay_a council_n of_o carthage_n since_o it_o order_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n present_v shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o bishop_n elect_v and_o only_o the_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n consecrate_v shall_v bless_v or_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o the_o form_n say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o office_n and_o work_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o commit_v unto_o thou_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o our_o hand_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ch●st_n here_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a deviate_n from_o the_o foresay_a form_n prescribe_v by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n order_v that_o both_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_v and_o the_o bishop_n assist_v shall_v pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o the_o form_n say_v accipe_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la by_o this_o we_o see_v how_o exact_a the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v in_o observe_v all_o the_o essential_a and_o necessary_a part_n and_o ceremony_n prescribe_v by_o that_o renown_a council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n as_o for_o other_o ceremony_n not_o essential_a the_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o declare_v that_o even_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n whereof_o they_o will_v have_v order_n to_o be_v a_o part_n they_o may_v be_v alter_v by_o the_o church_n as_o the_o condition_n of_o matter_n time_n and_o place_n may_v require_v neither_o be_v this_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o church_n universal_a congregat_v in_o a_o general_a council_n only_o but_o also_o of_o each_o particular_a church_n whence_o proceed_v the_o great_a variety_n of_o rite_n in_o thing_n indifferent_a among_o the_o ancient_a and_o even_o modern_a christian_n of_o several_a place_n and_o order_n approve_v by_o that_o grave_a sentence_n of_o 41._o of_o lib._n 1._o epist_n 41._o gregory_n the_o great_a in_o una_fw-la fide_fw-la nihil_fw-la ossicit_fw-la sanctae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la diversa_fw-la and_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n upon_o this_o account_n introduce_v new_a rite_n why_o may_v not_o that_o of_o england_n abolish_v other_o especial_o such_o as_o be_v find_v to_o be_v superstitious_a for_o which_o the_o quia_fw-la the_o distinct_a 63._o quia_fw-la canon_n law_n give_v this_o warrant_n docemur_fw-la exemplo_fw-la ezechiae_fw-la frangentis_fw-la serpontem_fw-la aeneum_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o superstitionem_fw-la vertuntur_fw-la illa_fw-la sine_fw-la tarditate_fw-la aliqua_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la magna_fw-la autoritate_fw-la à_fw-la posteris_fw-la destrui_fw-la posse_fw-la we_o be_v teach_v by_o example_n of_o hezechias_n that_o such_o thing_n as_o turn_v to_o superstition_n may_v be_v without_o delay_n and_o with_o authority_n extirpate_v in_o after_o age_n as_o a_o good_a husband_n cut_v off_o not_o only_o rot_v but_o superfluous_a branch_n that_o may_v suck_v away_o the_o sap_n from_o the_o main_a tree_n so_o any_o church_n that_o be_v free_a and_o independent_a such_o as_o this_o of_o england_n be_v may_v cut_v off_o superstitious_a and_o superfluous_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o by_o their_o multiplicity_n may_v distract_v both_o the_o minister_n and_o congregation_n and_o take_v their_o attention_n from_o the_o main_a object_n of_o their_o devotion_n and_o certain_o who_o ever_o consider_v the_o vast_a number_n of_o ceremony_n use_v now_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o prescribe_v in_o their_o pontifical_a will_v find_v it_o a_o task_n not_o easy_a for_o even_o a_o good_a capacity_n to_o comprehend_v and_o practise_v they_o all_o and_o very_o hard_a to_o think_v of_o elevate_a the_o mind_n withal_o to_o prayer_n or_o meditation_n chap._n viii_o how_o far_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o romish_a in_o matter_n of_o ordination_n wherein_o they_o differ_v and_o how_o absurd_a the_o pretention_n of_o romanist_n be_v that_o our_o difference_n herein_o with_o they_o shall_v annul_v our_o order_n as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o think_v convenient_a to_o follow_v that_o of_o rome_n in_o all_o their_o superfluous_a ceremony_n especial_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v noxious_a and_o opposite_a to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o christian_a discipline_n so_o it_o do_v not_o grudge_n to_o go_v along_o and_o conform_v with_o they_o in_o what_o they_o retain_v of_o ancient_a integrity_n in_o many_o thing_n we_o agree_v with_o they_o first_o that_o only_a bishop_n be_v to_o give_v order_n second_o that_o none_o be_v promote_v to_o order_n without_o the_o title_n of_o a_o benefice_n or_o sufficient_a patrimony_n which_o be_v far_o more_o exact_o observe_v in_o the_o english_a then_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n three_o that_o the_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v be_v examine_v as_o to_o behaviour_n and_o ability_n four_o that_o certain_a time_n and_o day_n be_v appoint_v for_o ordination_n five_o that_o the_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v aught_o to_o appear_v in_o the_o church_n six_o that_o they_o receive_v their_o order_n on_o their_o knee_n seven_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o communion_n all_o this_o be_v common_o observe_v in_o both_o church_n but_o more_o exact_o and_o indispensible_o in_o the_o english_a as_o to_o order_n in_o general_n now_o as_o to_o particular_a order_n we_o agree_v in_o the_o follow_a point_n as_o to_z deacon_n first_o that_o the_o archdeacon_n present_v they_o to_o the_o bishop_n second_o that_o the_o bishop_n inquire_v of_o the_o archdeacon_n whether_o he_o know_v they_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o that_o order_n three_o that_o the_o bishop_n admonish_v the_o congregation_n that_o if_o any_o person_n have_v any_o thing_n to_o say_v against_o they_o he_o shall_v declare_v it_o four_o that_o the_o bishop_n instruct_v they_o in_o the_o duty_n they_o be_v to_o perform_v five_o that_o litany_n be_v say_v and_o the_o bishop_n exhort_v the_o congregation_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v that_o they_o may_v be_v fit_a minister_n in_o that_o sacred_a order_n sixthy_a that_o the_o bishop_n give_v they_o the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o power_n to_o read_v they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n seven_o that_o one_o of_o the_o deacon_n new_o ordain_v shall_v read_v the_o gospel_n herein_o we_o agree_v but_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n first_o where_o they_o add_v to_o the_o litany_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n second_o where_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o deacon_n to_o read_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o dead_a three_o that_o what_o be_v not_o express_o deliver_v by_o the_o roman_a formulary_a be_v more_o clear_o express_v by_o the_o english_a as_o for_o example_n the_o order_n of_o deacon_n in_o the_o former_a be_v give_v by_o these_o word_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o power_n to_o resist_v the_o devil_n and_o his_o temtation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v too_o general_a and_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v make_v more_o proper_a and_o apposite_a to_o the_o function_n of_o deacon_n by_o these_o other_o word_n use_v in_o the_o english_a ordinal_n receive_v authority_n to_o exercise_v the_o work_n of_o a_o deacon_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n commit_v to_o thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n four_o that_o we_o reduce_v the_o tedious_a variety_n of_o vestment_n and_o ceremony_n use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o
the_o romish_a party_n now_o it_o remain_v to_o show_v that_o the_o succession_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n from_o those_o of_o unquestioned_a legality_n before_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o due_a ordination_n of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o say_a rule_n and_o rite_n be_v more_o clear_a and_o unquestionable_a with_o we_o then_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n mr._n mason_n give_v a_o exact_a account_n of_o their_o succession_n and_o lawful_a ordination_n the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o it_o the_o person_n conscerate_v they_o run_v upon_o several_a diocese_n especial_o that_o of_o canterbury_n from_o the_o time_n he_o publish_v his_o book_n which_o be_v the_o year_n 1638._o to_o the_o time_n of_o k._n henry_n the_o eight_o when_o the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n be_v not_o question_v ground_v his_o narrative_a upon_o the_o authentic_a record_n keep_v in_o london_n and_o in_o the_o same_o record_n may_v be_v find_v the_o like_a account_n of_o the_o ensue_a ordination_n from_o mr._n mason_n time_n to_o this_o day_n the_o like_a account_n may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o several_a registry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ireland_n from_o our_o day_n up_o to_o the_o aforesaid_a time_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o touch_v the_o prime_a church_n that_o of_o armagh_n i_o find_v the_o ensue_a account_n of_o the_o succession_n and_o ordination_n of_o arch-bishop_n in_o it_o from_o the_o present_a archbishop_n the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n james_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n primate_n of_o all_o ireland_n to_o the_o great_a comfort_n and_o benefit_n of_o it_o since_o the_o blind_a passion_n can_v miss_v to_o see_v in_o his_o grace_n the_o idea_n of_o a_o most_o renown_a and_o perfect_a prelate_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o worthy_a vicar_n general_n and_o judge_n of_o his_o prerogative_n court_v the_o noble_a and_o learned_a dudley_n loftus_n doctor_n in_o law_n i_o find_v i_o say_v the_o account_n follow_v of_o his_o grace_n his_o lineal_a succession_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o unquestioned_a authority_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n james_n margetson_n consecrate_a the_o 27._o of_o january_n 1660._o by_o john_n bramhal_o archbishop_n of_o armagh_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o st._n patric_n in_o dublin_n john_n bramhal_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n be_v consecrate_a bishop_n of_o derry_n in_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o castle_n of_o dublin_n the_o 26._o of_o may_v 1634._o by_o james_n usher_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n etc._n etc._n james_n usher_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n be_v consecrate_a bishop_n of_o meath_z at_o droghedah_n in_o the_o church_n of_o st._n peter_n anno_fw-la 1621._o by_o christopher_n hampton_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n etc._n etc._n christopher_n hampton_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n be_v conseciate_v bishop_n of_o derry_n may_v the_o 5._o 1613._o in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o st._n patric_n by_o thomas_n jones_n archbishop_n of_o dublin_n etc._n etc._n thomas_n jones_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n be_v consecrate_a bishop_n of_o meath_z in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o st._n patric_n dublin_n the_o 12._o of_o may_n 1584._o by_o adam_n loftus_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o dublin_n etc._n etc._n adam_n loftus_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o dublin_n be_v consecrate_a archbishop_n of_o armagh_n in_o the_o church_n of_o st._n patric_n dublin_n anno_fw-la 1562._o by_o hugh_n curwin_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o dublin_n etc._n etc._n hugh_n curwin_n doctor_n of_o law_n be_v consecrate_a archbishop_n of_o dublin_n the_o 8._o of_o september_n 1555._o being_n the_o three_o of_o queen_n mary_n together_o with_o james_n turbirwill_n bishop_n of_o exeter_n and_o william_n glin_n bishop_n of_o bargor_n each_o one_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o ireland_n may_v give_v the_o like_a account_n of_o their_o lawful_a ordination_n and_o lineal_a succession_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o unquestioned_a authority_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o queen_n mary_n time_n no_o exception_n be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v take_v against_o the_o legality_n of_o any_o of_o they_o and_o the_o law_n be_v so_o severe_a and_o the_o penalty_n of_o praemunire_n so_o heavy_a against_o any_o bishop_n that_o will_v enter_v otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o rite_n and_o requisite_n above_o mention_v and_o justify_v it_o be_v moral_o incredible_a that_o any_o will_v permit_v any_o defect_n to_o intervene_v in_o his_o consecration_n that_o may_v bring_v upon_o he_o so_o great_a a_o damage_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o bishop_n or_o pope_n of_o rome_n we_o have_v not_o only_a conjecture_n but_o clear_a evidence_n by_o a_o learned_a and_o exact_a pen_n of_o their_o own_o party_n that_o none_o of_o the_o bishop_n or_o pope_n who_o usurp_v that_o see_v from_o gregory_n the_o 13._o be_v a_o lawful_a bishop_n or_o pope_n the_o treatise_n pen_v upon_o this_o subject_n in_o latin_a and_o dedicate_v to_o king_n james_n bear_v this_o title_n the_o new_a man_n or_o a_o supplication_n from_o a_o unknown_a person_n a_o roman_n catholic_n unto_o james_n the_o monarch_n of_o great_a britain_n and_o from_o he_o to_o the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n touch_v the_o cause_n and_o reason_n that_o will_v argue_v a_o necessity_n of_o a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v forthwith_o assemble_v against_o he_o that_o now_o usurp_v the_o papal_a chair_n under_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n the_o five_o this_o treatise_n be_v publish_v by_o order_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o prince_n as_o the_o world_n know_v king_n james_n to_o be_v it_o be_v a_o blind_a insolence_n to_o say_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v real_a and_o unfeigned_a and_o a_o treatise_n so_o destructive_a to_o the_o credit_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n be_v not_o disprove_v for_o the_o space_n of_o nine_o year_n by_o any_o of_o that_o party_n as_o report_v by_o mr._n william_n crashaw_n translator_n of_o the_o say_a treatise_n from_o latin_a into_o english_a in_o the_o year_n 1622._o nor_o to_o this_o day_n by_o any_o that_o we_o know_v it_o be_v a_o clear_a argument_n they_o want_v mean_n to_o gainsay_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o i_o will_v reduce_v to_o a_o brief_a sum_n the_o head_n of_o his_o proof_n as_o well_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o of_o law_n that_o the_o election_n of_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o five_o succeed_a gregory_n the_o thirteen_o be_v null_n and_o invalid_a and_o consequent_o the_o cardinal_n create_v by_o he_o be_v no_o true_a cardinal_n nor_o the_o pope_n elect_a by_o such_o cardinal_n true_a pope_n for_o ground_n of_o this_o discourse_n it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v that_o any_o simoniacal_a contract_n intervening_a in_o the_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n such_o a_o election_n be_v therefore_o render_v null_n and_o invalid_a as_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o bull_n of_o julius_n the_o 2_o set_v out_o against_o simonaical_a election_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o word_n be_v as_o follow_v if_o it_o shall_v hereafter_o fall_v out_o through_o the_o devil_n malice_n the_o enemy_n of_o mankind_n or_o the_o ambition_n or_o covetousness_n of_o the_o elector_n that_o when_o we_o or_o any_o of_o our_o successor_n shall_v by_o god_n appointment_n be_v remove_v from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n the_o election_n of_o the_o new_a pope_n be_v make_v and_o do_v either_o by_o he_o that_o be_v ch●sen_v or_o by_o any_o other_o or_o more_o of_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n by_o the_o heresy_n of_o simonaical_a contract_n give_v promise_a or_o receive_v any_o good_n of_o any_o kind_n or_o land_n or_o castle_n or_o office_n or_o benefice_n or_o by_o make_v any_o other_o promise_n or_o obligation_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o whether_o they_o do_v it_o by_o themselves_o or_o another_o by_o a_o few_o or_o by_o many_o and_o whether_o the_o election_n be_v accomplish_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o two_o part_n of_o the_o cardinal_n divide_v in_o three_o or_o by_o the_o uniform_a consent_n or_o voice_n of_o they_o all_o whether_o it_o be_v do_v by_o way_n of_o assumption_n or_o adoration_n yea_o though_o there_o be_v no_o writing_n make_v at_o all_o we_o determine_v define_v and_o declare_v that_o not_o only_o the_o election_n or_o assumption_n so_o make_v shall_v be_v from_o that_o very_a moment_n void_a and_o of_o none_o effect_n and_o no_o power_n or_o faculty_n shall_v accrue_v to_o he_o thereby_o thrust_v in_o of_o any_o administration_n government_n or_o jurisdiction_n in_o matter_n spiritual_a or_o temporal_a but_o also_o that_o it_o shall_v and_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o any_o cardinal_n present_a at_o the_o say_a election_n to_o except_v against_o the_o say_a intruder_n and_o to_o call_v he_o into_o question_n for_o the_o crime_n of_o simony_n as_o of_o a_o true_a and_o undoubted_a heresy_n that_o so_o be_v a_o heretic_n he_o may_v be_v of_o all_o man_n accounteda_n no_o pope_n or_o
but_o do_v not_o help_v forward_o his_o election_n and_o the_o election_n be_v proper_o hold_v do_v and_o perfect_v before_o they_o be_v perform_v as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v in_o the_o aforesaid_a bull_n of_o julius_n the_o second_o neither_o be_v the_o call_n together_o of_o all_o the_o cardinal_n necessary_o require_v for_o it_o be_v express_o command_v in_o no_o law_n and_o as_o for_o the_o text_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n call_v licet_fw-la devitanda_fw-la it_o show_v the_o validity_n of_o the_o election_n as_o be_v sound_o prove_v by_o cardinal_n jacobatius_n who_o show_v that_o at_o least_o a_o council_n be_v to_o be_v call_v to_o declare_v whether_o the_o election_n be_v good_a or_o no_o and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o proceed_v to_o the_o election_n of_o another_o the_o election_n therefore_o of_o clement_n thus_o make_v be_v to_o be_v hold_v a_o nullity_n as_o be_v do_v by_o deceit_n and_o fraud_n according_a to_o the_o express_a text_n of_o the_o law_n lay_v down_o in_o these_o word_n 28._o word_n ●n_n c●in_fw-fr nomine_fw-la domin●_n do_v 28._o but_o if_o any_o shall_v be_v elect_v ordain_v 154._o ordain_v jacobat_fw-la tr_fw-la de_fw-fr council_n part_n ●_o be_v 4._o n._n 154._o or_o enthronize_v pope_n through_o sedition_n presumption_n or_o any_o ingeny_n or_o trick_n of_o wit_n contrary_a to_o this_o our_o sentence_n and_o synodical_a decree_n pronounce_v in_o open_a council_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n and_o his_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n we_o pronounce_v he_o subject_a to_o the_o great_a curse_n and_o separate_v by_o perpetual_a anathema_n from_o all_o society_n with_o god_n church_n together_o with_o all_o his_o author_n factor_n and_o abettor_n a_o antichrist_n a_o intruder_n and_o destroyer_n of_o christian_a religion_n etc._n etc._n ruffiensis_fw-la etc._n abb._n in_o d._n licet_fw-la devitanda_fw-la n._n 11._o ver_fw-la exposuit_fw-la ruffiensis_fw-la and_o after_o cardinal_n hostiensis_n the_o great_a doctor_n call_v the_o abbot_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o text_n expound_n the_o word_n ingeny_n to_o be_v craft_n collusion_n and_o deceit_n and_o such_o like_a as_o be_v the_o election_n of_o joh._n the_o 22._o that_o be_v afterward_o condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n for_o when_o after_o the_o death_n of_o alexander_n the_o five_o the_o cardinal_n assemble_v at_o bononia_n and_o consult_v about_o the_o choice_n of_o a_o new_a cardinal_n cossa_n who_o then_o be_v legate_n there_o a_o man_n potent_a and_o warlike_a obtain_v of_o the_o elector_n by_o his_o greatness_n that_o they_o will_v commit_v the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o election_n to_o he_o which_o they_o have_v no_o soon_o grant_v he_o but_o he_o forthwith_o elect_v himself_o but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o upon_o examination_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o public_a council_n it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v compass_v by_o fraud_n and_o deceitful_a trick_n he_o be_v therefore_o deprive_v by_o the_o council_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o clement_n can_v not_o be_v take_v for_o a_o true_a pope_n both_o for_o that_o he_o be_v choose_v by_o such_o as_o have_v no_o power_n to_o choose_v as_o also_o that_o that_o choice_n by_o they_o make_v be_v wrought_v by_o fraud_n and_o deceit_n and_o to_o the_o injury_n of_o another_o lawful_o choose_v before_o and_o be_v therefore_o void_a though_o it_o have_v be_v do_v by_o such_o as_o have_v be_v lawful_o enable_v to_o make_v such_o a_o election_n chap._n xi_o nullity_n declare_v in_o the_o popedom_n of_o paul_n the_o five_o and_z other_o following_z the_o forementioned_a roman_a catholic_n author_n discover_v another_o egregious_a fraud_n and_o cheat_n use_v in_o the_o election_n of_o paul_n the_o five_o succeed_a clement_n the_o eight_o wherewith_o they_o turn_v out_o the_o cardinal_n of_o florence_n lawful_o elect_v to_o bring_v in_o factious_o this_o paul_n before_o call_v cardinal_n borg●esius_n the_o particular_n of_o that_o intrigue_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_a treatise_n n._n 15._o beside_o whi●h_n damnable_a fraud_n and_o the_o nullity_n of_o the_o cardinal_n elect_v both_o render_v the_o election_n void_a our_o author_n discover_v another_o foul_a cause_n of_o nullity_n in_o the_o popedom_n of_o paul_n the_o five_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o notorious_a simony_n for_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v presuppose_v that_o the_o pope_n as_o pope_n be_v not_o free_a from_o the_o crime_n of_o simony_n nor_o exempt_v from_o incur_v censure_n in_o that_o case_n as_o aquinas_n prove_v at_o large_a conclude_v and_o resolve_v that_o the_o pope_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o may_v incur_v the_o vice_n and_o come_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o crime_n of_o simony_n if_o he_o take_v money_n for_o any_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v all_o the_o divine_n that_o write_v upon_o that_o place_n of_o aquinas_n in_o consequence_n to_o which_o doctrine_n the_o 7._o the_o aquin_n 2.2_o q._n 100_o art_n 1._o ad_fw-la 7._o council_n of_o basil_n even_o for_o this_o crime_n and_o sin_n of_o simony_n call_v in_o question_n examine_v convict_a and_o condemn_v eugenius_n the_o four_o then_o pope_n and_o deprive_v he_o of_o the_o papacy_n the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n decree_n be_v these_o by_o this_o definitive_a sentence_n of_o the_o great_a and_o universal_a holy_a council_n which_o be_v here_o record_v in_o writing_n for_o all_o the_o world_n to_o know_v and_o all_o posterity_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o council_n pronounce_v decree_v and_o declare_v gabriel_n former_o call_v p._n eugenius_n the_o 4._o to_o have_v be_v and_o so_o to_o be_v a_o notorious_a &_o manifest_a &_o contumacious_a rebel_n to_o the_o warning_n and_o commandment_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o that_o he_o still_o persist_v in_o the_o say_v open_a rebellion_n and_o do_v therefore_o condemn_v he_o for_o a_o wilful_a contemner_n and_o violater_n of_o the_o holy_a ancient_a canon_n a_o perturber_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n a_o notorious_a scandalizer_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n a_o perjure_a incorrigible_a and_o schismatical_a simonist_n and_o therefore_o a_o forsaker_n of_o the_o faith_n a_o heretic_n a_o dilapidator_n and_o consumer_n of_o the_o right_n and_o riches_n of_o the_o church_n commit_v to_o his_o trust_n and_o have_v thereby_o make_v himself_o a_o unprofitable_a member_n and_o not_o only_o unworthy_a and_o unfit_a for_o the_o papal_a power_n but_o of_o all_o other_o title_n degree_n honour_n or_o dignity_n ecclesiastical_a who_o the_o aforesaid_a general_n council_n do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n declare_v and_o pronounce_v to_o be_v by_o the_o law_n deprive_v of_o the_o papacy_n and_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o these_o present_v it_o do_v depose_v remove_v deprive_v and_o throw_v he_o out_o now_o that_o the_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o be_v guilty_a of_o simony_n and_o deserve_v to_o be_v treat_v as_o eugenius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n our_o author_n declare_v in_o the_o foresay_a treatise_n chapter_n the_o 2._o from_o the_o second_o number_n by_o the_o word_n follow_v in_o the_o datary_n which_o be_v a_o office_n at_o rome_n wherein_o all_o matter_n of_o benefice_n and_o business_n of_o that_o kind_n be_v expedit_v this_o be_v the_o course_n and_o custom_n at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v due_o observe_v that_o the_o benefice_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n collation_n whether_o reserve_v to_o his_o gift_n it_o fall_v void_a in_o the_o month_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o papacy_n which_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o far_a distance_n from_o rome_n or_o that_o they_o be_v with_o cure_n can_v be_v give_v to_o his_o nephew_n borghesius_fw-la be_v give_v to_o some_o of_o the_o suitor_n or_o competitor_n that_o be_v of_o that_o country_n or_o next_o adjoin_v to_o it_o for_o they_o take_v order_n that_o none_o be_v bestow_v present_o but_o lie_v vacant_a for_o a_o time_n that_o so_o a_o whole_a concourse_n of_o competitor_n may_v flock_v together_o for_o it_o which_o be_v not_o do_v for_o any_o good_a end_n that_o so_o they_o may_v know_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o suitor_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o worthy_a as_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v but_o that_o they_o may_v learn_v which_o be_v the_o rich_a and_o so_o may_v know_v how_o to_o make_v the_o best_a bargain_n to_o this_o end_n the_o time_n of_o this_o competition_n be_v appoint_v at_o a_o certain_a day_n whereof_o public_a notice_n be_v give_v that_o so_o all_o the_o suitor_n may_v come_v and_o that_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o datary_n may_v learn_v in_o that_o time_n which_o of_o all_o that_o seek_v it_o be_v best_o able_a to_o buy_v out_o and_o extinguish_v the_o pension_n that_o be_v lay_v upon_o that_o live_n for_o this_o be_v the_o fashion_n
papam_fw-la de_fw-la parte_fw-la mea_fw-la salutate_fw-la &_o apostolica_fw-la praecepta_fw-la humiliter_fw-la audite_fw-la sed_fw-la superfluas_fw-la adinventiones_fw-la regno_fw-la meo_fw-la adinferre_v nolite_fw-la salute_v the_o pope_n from_o he_o hear_v his_o precept_n but_o bring_v no_o superfluous_a device_n or_o innovation_n into_o his_o kingdom_n true_a it_o be_v that_o several_a of_o our_o godly_a king_n do_v permit_v appeal_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o rome_n in_o matter_n wherein_o our_o own_o bishop_n can_v not_o agree_v and_o direction_n to_o be_v seek_v from_o thence_o as_o from_o a_o flourish_a and_o learned_a church_n not_o as_o a_o superior_a judicature_n and_o when_o the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v pretend_v to_o any_o such_o superiority_n our_o king_n do_v protest_v against_o it_o so_o henry_n the_o five_o have_v demand_v of_o martin_n the_o four_o some_o particular_n to_o which_o his_o ambassador_n not_o find_v he_o ready_a to_o assent_v they_o 57_o they_o arthur_n duc._n in_o vita_fw-la henrici_fw-la chich_o p._n 56._o 57_o tell_v he_o that_o they_o have_v order_n to_o protest_v before_o he_o that_o the_o king_n will_v use_v his_o own_o right_n in_o those_o particular_n as_o thing_n which_o he_o demand_v not_o out_o of_o necessity_n but_o for_o the_o honour_n &_o respect_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o show_v to_o that_o sea_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v a_o public_a protestation_n thereof_o before_o the_o whole_a college_n of_o cardinal_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n be_v sundry_a example_n remain_v on_o 38._o on_o rot._n parliam_fw-la 17_o edward_n 3._o n._n 59_o 25._o edw._n 3._o oct_n purif_n n._n 13._o 7._o hen._n 4._o n._n 114._o 13._o hen._n 6._o n._n 38._o record_n where_o the_o king_n at_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o commons_o for_o redress_v of_o some_o thing_n amiss_o belong_v to_o ecclesiastic_a cognizance_n first_o choose_v to_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o on_o his_o delay_n or_o fail_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n do_v either_o himself_o by_o statute_n redress_v the_o inconveniency_n or_o command_v the_o archbishop_n to_o see_v it_o do_v for_o certain_a it_o be_v by_o the_o course_n of_o all_o our_o chronicle_n and_o history_n that_o our_o king_n together_o with_o the_o convocation_n of_o their_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n have_v in_o themselves_o absolute_a and_o entire_a power_n of_o govern_v and_o reform_v the_o church_n of_o this_o kingdom_n without_o any_o dependency_n upon_o any_o foreign_a authority_n it_o be_v never_o doubt_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v upon_o any_o warrantable_a ground_n that_o they_o have_v within_o their_o own_o dominion_n the_o same_o power_n which_o constantine_n have_v in_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o our_o bishop_n have_v the_o same_o which_o st._n peter_n have_v in_o the_o church_n for_o which_o since_o the_o erection_n of_o canterbury_n into_o a_o archbishopric_n the_o bishop_n of_o that_o sea_n be_v hold_v 127.15_o hold_v malm_n de_fw-fr pontif._n lib._n 1._o in_o ansel_n fol._n 127.15_o quasi_fw-la alterius_fw-la orbis_fw-la papae_fw-la as_o vrban_a the_o second_o style_v they_o and_o do_v exercise_v vice_n apostolicas_fw-la in_o anglia_fw-it that_o be_v they_o use_v the_o same_o power_n within_o this_o island_n which_o the_o 27._o the_o eadmer_n p._n 27._o pope_n do_v in_o other_o part_n and_o in_o our_o writer_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v frequent_o call_v princeps_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la angliae_fw-la 33._o angliae_fw-la ib._n p._n 107._o 33._o pontifex_fw-la summus_fw-la 54._o summus_fw-la gervas_n boro_n by'r_a col_fw-fr 1663._o 54._o patriacha_n king_n edgar_z assert_v this_o power_n to_o be_v in_o himself_o and_o in_o his_o clergy_n in_o his_o memorable_a speech_n make_v to_o they_o 361.16_o they_o apud_fw-la ailred_n col_fw-fr 361.16_o ego_fw-la constantini_n vos_fw-fr petri_n gladium_fw-la habetis_fw-la in_o manibus_fw-la i_o bear_v in_o my_o hand_n the_o sword_n of_o constantin_n and_o you_o that_o of_o peter_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o affair_n of_o most_o concern_v in_o the_o church_n have_v their_o dependence_n on_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o those_o time_n do_v not_o doubt_v to_o continue_v to_o he_o the_o style_n of_o pontifex_fw-la maximus_fw-la as_o 106._o as_o tom._n 3._o a_o 312._o n._n 106._o baronius_n note_n sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la christianitatis_fw-la labe_fw-la so_o 16._o so_o regularis_fw-la concordia_fw-la etc._n etc._n not._n seldeni_n ad_fw-la eadmerum_fw-la p._n 146._o 16._o king_n edgar_n be_v solicito_fw-la be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o kingdom_n veluti_fw-la domini_fw-la sedulus_fw-la agricola_n &_o pastorum_fw-la pastor_n and_o write_v himself_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o his_o 476._o his_o council_n spelm._n à_fw-fr p._n 444._o a●_n p._n 476._o law_n and_o canon_n he_o make_v know_v that_o he_o do_v not_o assume_v those_o title_n in_o vain_a king_n defendat_fw-la king_n leg._n edw._n confess_v c._n 17._o p._n 142._o rex_fw-la quia_fw-la vicartus_fw-la summi_fw-la regis_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la hocest_n constitutus_fw-la ut_fw-la regnum_fw-la terrenum_fw-la &_o populum_fw-la dom●ni_fw-la &_o s●per_fw-la omne_fw-la sanctam_fw-la veneretur_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ejus_fw-la &_o regat_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la injurtis_fw-la defendat_fw-la edward_n the_o confessor_n a_o canonize_a saint_n do_v declare_v the_o same_o and_o practise_v according_o the_o king_n say_v he_o be_v vicar_n of_o the_o supreme_a king_n his_o duty_n be_v to_o govern_v and_o defend_v the_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o injury_n and_o over_o all_o to_o reverence_n govern_v and_o defend_v his_o church_n the_o same_o be_v declare_v and_o practise_v by_o 1._o by_o leg._n inae_fw-la in_o pras_fw-la p._n 1._o ina_n who_o baronius_n style_v a_o most_o pious_a king_n by_o 109._o by_o leg._n fol._n 11._o p._n 109._o canutus_n acknowledge_v for_o a_o most_o bountiful_a benefactor_n of_o church_n and_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n erga_n ecclesias_fw-la atque_fw-la dei_fw-la seruos_fw-la benignissimus_fw-la largitor_fw-la as_o c_o as_o epist_n 97._o fol._n 93._o canut_n c_o furbertus_n carnotensis_n relate_v of_o he_o and_o several_a other_o godly_a king_n of_o england_n who_o several_a law_n touch_v ecclesiastic_a affair_n you_o may_v see_v relate_v by_o jorvalens_n c._n 2._o col_fw-fr 761._o c._n 5._o col_fw-fr 830._o c._n 23._o col_fw-fr 921._o as_o also_o the_o law_n of_o emperor_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o book_n of_o co_fw-la of_o codex_fw-la theodos_fw-la de_fw-fr seriis_fw-la de_fw-la nuptiis_fw-la etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr s●de_fw-fr catholica_fw-la de_fw-la episcopis_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la &_o clericis_fw-la de_fw-la monachis_fw-la de_fw-la haereticit_fw-la de_fw-fr apost_n de_fw-fr religione_fw-la de_fw-la episcopali_fw-la judicio_fw-la &_o cod_n jast_n l._n 1._o tit._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o &_o passim_fw-la in_o co_fw-la theodosius_n and_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n do_v employ_v their_o bishop_n and_o divine_n in_o resolve_v upon_o wholesome_a decree_n touch_v church_n affair_n and_o these_o decree_n they_o espouse_v themselves_o for_o law_n so_o as_o the_o transgressor_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o penalty_n this_o same_o course_n our_o king_n have_v take_v as_o well_o in_o former_a age_n as_o in_o this_o latter_a of_o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o church_n henry_n the_o eight_o have_v those_o occasion_n of_o discontent_n with_o pope_n clement_n the_o seven_o which_o as_o too_o much_o know_v i_o omit_v to_o relate_v and_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o execute_v at_o last_o what_o long_a time_n be_v desire_v and_o often_o attemt_v in_o england_n viz._n to_o throw_v off_o the_o usurp_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o this_o kingdom_n to_o proceed_v with_o due_a legality_n and_o consideration_n in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n he_o write_v to_o the_o university_n and_o great_a monastery_n and_o church_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o year_n 1534._o and_o the_o eighteen_o of_o may_n of_o the_o same_o year_n to_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n require_v they_o like_o man_n of_o virtue_n and_o profound_a literature_n diligent_o to_o entreat_v examine_v and_o discuss_v a_o certain_a question_n viz._n a_o romanus_n episcopus_fw-la habeat_fw-la majorem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la sibi_fw-la collatam_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la angliae_fw-la quam_fw-la alius_fw-la quivis_fw-la externus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v any_o great_a jurisdiction_n give_v to_o he_o in_o holy_a scripture_n over_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n and_o to_o return_v their_o opinion_n in_o write_v under_o their_o common_a seal_n according_a to_o the_o mere_a and_o sincere_a truth_n of_o the_o same_o to_o which_o after_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o examination_n they_o return_v answer_v that_o he_o have_v no_o such_o jurisdiction_n in_o this_o land_n the_o word_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n return_v their_o answer_n to_o the_o king_n upon_o this_o subject_a the_o 27._o of_o june_n of_o the_o aforesaid_a 1534._o
which_o i_o see_v in_o the_o record_n of_o that_o university_n be_v as_o follow_v post_fw-la susceptam_fw-la itaque_fw-la per_fw-la nos_fw-la quaestionem_fw-la ante_fw-la dictam_fw-la cum_fw-la omni_fw-la humilitate_fw-la devotione_fw-la ac_fw-la debita_fw-la reverentia_fw-la convocatis_fw-la undique_fw-la dictae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la academiae_fw-la theologis_fw-la habitoque_fw-la complurium_fw-la dierum_fw-la spatio_fw-la ac_fw-la deliberandi_fw-la tempore_fw-la satis_fw-la amplo_fw-la quo_fw-la interim_n cum_fw-la omni_fw-la qua_fw-la potuimus_fw-la diligentia_fw-la justitiae_fw-la zelo_fw-la religione_fw-la &_o conscientia_fw-la incorrupta_fw-la perscrutaremur_fw-la tam_fw-la sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la libros_fw-la quam_fw-la super_fw-la cisdem_fw-la approbatissimos_fw-la interpretes_n &_o eos_fw-la quidem_fw-la saepe_fw-la &_o saepius_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la evolutos_fw-la &_o exactissime_fw-la collatos_fw-la repetitos_fw-la &_o examinatos_fw-la deinde_fw-la &_o disputationibus_fw-la solennibus_fw-la palam_fw-la &_o publicae_fw-la habitis_fw-la &_o celebratis_fw-la tandem_fw-la in_o hanc_fw-la sententiam_fw-la unanimiter_fw-la omnes_fw-la convenimus_fw-la ac_fw-la concord_n fuimus_fw-la viz._n romanum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la majorem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la sibi_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la collatam_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la anglia_fw-it quam_fw-la alium_fw-la quemvis_fw-la externum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la we_o therefore_o after_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n this_o question_n with_o all_o humility_n devotion_n and_o due_a reverence_n the_o divine_n of_o our_o university_n be_v call_v together_o from_o all_o place_n and_o the_o space_n of_o many_o day_n and_o time_n enough_o bein_z give_v for_o deliberate_v whereby_o with_o all_o diligence_n possible_a zeal_n of_o justice_n religion_n and_o upright_a conscience_n we_o shall_v search_v as_o well_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o most_o approve_a interpreter_n of_o they_o and_o they_o be_v very_o often_o turn_v over_o by_o we_o and_o most_o exact_o confer_v together_o review_v &_o examine_v &_o moreover_o have_v celebrate_v &_o hold_v public_a &_o solemn_a dispute_n on_o this_o subject_n at_o last_o we_o have_v all_o unanimous_o agree_v upon_o this_o sentence_n viz._n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o any_o more_o jurisdiction_n give_v to_o he_o by_o god_n in_o holy_a scripture_n in_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n have_v have_v meet_v with_o this_o religious_a and_o learned_a declaration_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n i_o think_v convenient_a to_o relate_v it_o here_o as_o well_o for_o the_o authority_n the_o opinion_n of_o this_o great_a university_n be_v apt_a to_o give_v to_o the_o matter_n as_o also_o that_o it_o may_v be_v to_o we_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o zeal_n and_o diligence_n wherewith_o the_o other_o school_n monastery_n and_o church_n do_v proceed_v to_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n upon_o this_o subject_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a what_o the_o famous_a canonist_n tenerent_fw-la canonist_n navar._n cap._n cum_fw-la conti_fw-la get_v the_o rescript_n reme_v 1_o n._n ●o_o qui_fw-la unius_fw-la ●_z erudition_n ac_fw-la animi_fw-la pretate_fw-la celebr●s_fw-la autoritate_fw-la d●ctus_fw-la secerit_fw-la all_o quid_fw-la ex●usatur_fw-la etiam●●d_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la justum_fw-la &_o alii_fw-la contrarium_fw-la tenerent_fw-la navarre_n say_v and_o now_o be_v more_o common_o say_v and_o confirm_v by_o casuist_n and_o canonist_n that_o who_o do_v any_o thing_n follow_v therein_o the_o opinion_n of_o one_o doctor_n of_o know_a learning_n and_o piety_n though_o other_o be_v of_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v excuse_v though_o happy_o what_o he_o do_v shall_v not_o be_v just_a in_o itself_o and_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o one_o doctor_n of_o learning_n and_o piety_n can_v justify_v a_o man_n proceed_v shall_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o man_n famous_a for_o learning_n and_o piety_n that_o be_v then_o in_o the_o university_n monastery_n and_o church_n of_o england_n justify_v the_o proceed_n of_o king_n henry_n in_o free_v his_o kingdom_n from_o the_o slavery_n it_o be_v in_o under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o indeed_o be_v to_o lay_v the_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o romish_a usurpation_n and_o corruption_n in_o this_o land_n their_o pretend_a authority_n in_o it_o be_v find_v and_o declare_v not_o to_o be_v from_o god_n nor_o ground_v upon_o his_o divine_a word_n but_o illegal_o and_o fraudulent_o intrude_v upon_o the_o nation_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v all_o at_o their_o own_o liberty_n to_o reform_v their_o church_n by_o a_o national_a synod_n of_o their_o own_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n under_o the_o protection_n and_o inspection_n of_o their_o prince_n as_o in_o other_o time_n be_v do_v in_o this_o land_n &_o in_o consequence_n to_o this_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v congregat_v in_o 1533._o in_o stat._n 26._o hen._n 8._o c._n 1._o begin_v nou._n 3._o end_n dec._n 18._o 1533._o parliament_n a_o 1533_o have_v declare_v that_o his_o majesty_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n king_n of_o this_o realm_n shall_v have_v full_a power_n and_o authority_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o visit_v repress_v redress_v all_o such_o error_n heresy_n abuse_n etc._n etc._n which_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n may_v be_v lawful_o reform_v repress_a order_v redress_v etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o assume_v a_o new_a power_n but_o to_o renew_v and_o publish_v the_o ancient_a right_n of_o the_o king_n of_o this_o land_n it_o be_v true_a that_o pope_n in_o former_a age_n not_o find_v mean_n to_o hinder_v our_o prince_n from_o exercise_v this_o right_a of_o their_o own_o will_v by_o privilege_n continue_v it_o unto_o they_o so_o pope_n nichelas_n find_v our_o king_n to_o express_v one_o part_n of_o their_o office_n to_o be_v regere_fw-la populum_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o ecclesiam_fw-la ejus_fw-la write_v to_o edward_n the_o confessor_n vobis_fw-la &_o posteris_fw-la ves●ris_fw-la regibus_fw-la angliae_fw-la committimus_fw-la convocationem_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la loci_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la totius_fw-la angliae_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la &_o vice_fw-la nostra_fw-la cum_fw-la consilio_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la &_o abbatum_fw-la constituatis_fw-la ubique_fw-la quae_fw-la justa_fw-la sunt_fw-la we_o commit_v unto_o you_o and_o your_o successor_n king_n of_o england_n the_o government_n of_o that_o place_n and_o of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o in_o our_o name_n you_o may_v by_o the_o council_n of_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n order_n in_o all_o place_n what_o will_v be_v just_a the_o same_o pope_n do_v allow_v the_o like_a privilege_n to_o the_o emperor_n 23._o emperor_n bar._n 11._o annal._n 1059._o n._n 23._o nicolaus_n papa_n hoc_fw-la domino_fw-la meo_fw-la privilegium_fw-la quod_fw-la ex_fw-la paterno_fw-la jure_fw-la susceperat_fw-la praebuit_fw-la say_a the_o emperor_n advocate_n pope_n nicholas_n allow_v this_o privilege_n to_o my_o master_n which_o himself_o have_v by_o his_o birthright_n by_o the_o like_a art_n find_v the_o people_n of_o england_n unwilling_a to_o acknowledge_v any_o ecclesiastic_a power_n beside_o that_o of_o the_o land_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n for_o supreme_a of_o it_o under_o the_o king_n the_o pope_n have_v contrive_v that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n shall_v exercise_v that_o power_n as_o from_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o legatus_fw-la natus_fw-la or_o legate_n by_o his_o place_n of_o the_o roman_a sea_n this_o may_v seem_v like_o what_o they_o report_v of_o the_o great_a cham_n of_o tartary_n that_o after_o he_o have_v dine_v he_o order_v to_o give_v leave_n by_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n to_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v go_v to_o dinner_n but_o the_o pope_n drive_v further_a in_o his_o grant_n that_o in_o time_n if_o power_n shall_v assist_v he_o he_o may_v force_v upon_o they_o a_o subjection_n to_o he_o as_o if_o real_o the_o prince_n do_v owe_v their_o power_n to_o he_o but_o the_o art_n of_o rome_n be_v too_o much_o know_v in_o england_n for_o the_o people_n to_o be_v further_o delude_v by_o they_o and_o therefore_o a_o national_a synod_n or_o a_o convocation_n of_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n abbot_n and_o other_o clergy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v celebrate_v at_o london_n by_o order_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o six_o in_o the_o six_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n be_v that_o of_o our_o lord_n 1552._o a_o summary_n of_o article_n be_v agree_v upon_o to_o remove_v dissension_n in_o religion_n and_o reform_v the_o church_n from_o corruption_n that_o creep_v into_o it_o so_o pious_a and_o moderate_a so_o well_o ground_v upon_o divine_a scripture_n and_o upon_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a apostolic_a church_n that_o romanist_n may_v more_o easy_o rail_v and_o rant_v at_o then_o discover_v any_o real_a error_n in_o they_o my_o adversary_n n._n n._n after_o high_o inveigh_v against_o these_o article_n and_o boast_v to_o discover_v heresy_n in_o they_o single_v out_o the_o 22._o article_n which_o run_v thus_o the_o roman_a
say_v he_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a if_o he_o mislike_v that_o doctrine_n he_o may_v have_v deny_v it_o and_o remain_v a_o catholic_a a_o catholic_a i_o may_v remain_v and_o do_v but_o not_o of_o their_o communion_n that_o prop_n fail_v for_o those_o structure_n which_o i_o see_v clear_o to_o be_v ruinous_a without_o it_o it_o be_v a_o intolerable_a cavil_n to_o say_v i_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o pope_n alone_o or_o of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n to_o delude_v the_o reader_n with_o impertinent_a digression_n as_o often_o he_o do_v i_o have_v clear_o express_v my_o meaning_n to_o be_v that_o neither_o the_o pope_n alone_o nor_o in_o a_o council_n such_o as_o that_o of_o trent_n nor_o the_o congregation_n under_o his_o obedience_n be_v infallible_a to_o say_v the_o say_a congregation_n shall_v be_v the_o church_n universal_a which_o i_o allow_v according_a to_o st._n paul_n expression_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n be_v a_o arrogant_a beg_n of_o a_o conclusion_n which_o will_v never_o be_v allow_v to_o they_o all_o christian_a church_n that_o differ_v from_o they_o which_o be_v far_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n cry_v against_o their_o blind_a presumption_n in_o appropriate_v unto_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o the_o church_n true_o universal_a compose_v of_o all_o believer_n in_o christ_n whether_o diffusive_a or_o representative_a in_o a_o council_n true_o ecumenical_a and_o free_a such_o as_o be_v the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v to_o have_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o though_o it_o be_v not_o proper_o infallible_a yet_o it_o shall_v not_o err_v in_o thing_n fundamental_a to_o man_n salvation_n i_o do_v pious_o believe_v and_o of_o my_o meaning_n therein_o i_o give_v he_o no_o occasion_n to_o doubt_v therefore_o if_o he_o will_v speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n grant_v it_o be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a in_o the_o sense_n i_o deny_v infallibility_n to_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o a_o council_n of_o those_o depend_v upon_o he_o or_o out_o of_o it_o it_o follow_v we_o they_o have_v no_o certainty_n for_o their_o tenet_n rely_v upon_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n which_o be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v certain_a in_o itself_o nor_o consequent_o give_v certainty_n to_o thing_n depend_v upon_o it_o he_o only_o allow_v infallibility_n to_o the_o pope_n joint_o with_o a_o general_a council_n herein_o he_o gratify_v the_o jansenist_n who_o may_v by_o this_o plead_v for_o indemnity_n notwithstanding_o the_o definition_n of_o innocent_a the_o ten_o and_o alexander_n the_o seven_o against_o they_o which_o be_v not_o confirm_v or_o autorize_v by_o a_o general_a council_n in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o pope_n can_v pretend_v to_o infallibility_n in_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o opinion_n who_o hereby_o must_v incense_v against_o himself_o all_o the_o party_n adverse_a to_o the_o jansenist_n which_o will_v prove_v too_o hard_o for_o he_o but_o he_o say_v all_o catholic_n do_v agree_v in_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o general_a council_n therefore_o aquinas_n turrecremata_fw-la and_o alphonsus_n à_fw-fr castro_n be_v in_o his_o opinion_n no_o catholic_o of_o who_o etc._n who_o can._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr lo._n c._n 4._o aquin_n in_o 4_o d._n 6._o qu._n 1._o art_n 7._o in_o 3._o qu._n 2._o ad_fw-la 3._o turrecrem_fw-la l._n 2._o sum_n ecclesiae_fw-la c._n 91._o alphons_n à_fw-fr cast_n de_fw-fr just_a haer._n pun_v l._n c._n 5._o gloss_n interlin_fw-mi in_o illud_fw-la math._n 16._o porte_fw-fr infer_v etc._n etc._n canus_n relate_v that_o the_o church_n even_o pope_n and_o council_n together_o may_v err_v material_o in_o their_o opinion_n as_o i_o mention_v in_o the_o 30._o page_n of_o my_o discourse_n which_o if_o he_o do_v consider_v and_o examine_v he_o will_v not_o so_o peremtory_o assert_v that_o all_o catholic_n do_v agree_v in_o the_o infallibility_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n joint_o neither_o indeed_o do_v mr._n s._n himself_o s●em_v to_o be_v very_o strong_a in_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o infallibility_n for_o in_o the_o comfort_n he_o give_v his_o brethren_n on_o this_o account_n extol_v magnificent_o their_o happiness_n herein_o above_o protestant_n he_o so_o order_v the_o matter_n that_o their_o comfort_n must_v not_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o real_a existence_n of_o that_o infallibility_n but_o upon_o a_o strong_a apprehension_n or_o belief_n of_o it_o though_o not_o extant_a it_o be_v a_o comfort_n say_v he_o to_o a_o unacquainted_a traveller_n to_o be_v guide_v by_o one_o who_o he_o firm_o believe_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o way_n though_o real_o your_o guide_n be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o way_n if_o you_o certain_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v and_o can_v stray_v etc._n etc._n this_o be_v such_o another_o comfort_n as_o the_o grand_a turk_n give_v to_o his_o man_n that_o die_v in_o his_o quarrel_n they_o go_v immediate_o to_o paradise_n though_o it_o be_v not_o so_o it_o be_v a_o comfort_n to_o think_v it_o be_v a_o sad_a comfort_n for_o the_o unhappy_a soul_n lose_v but_o commodious_a for_o the_o turk_n to_o get_v by_o these_o mean_v people_n to_o sight_n desperate_o and_o die_v for_o he_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o church_n or_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o believe_v they_o be_v infallible_a be_v a_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o people_n and_o very_o important_a for_o the_o authority_n and_o grandeur_n of_o that_o court_n whether_o it_o be_v so_o indeed_o be_v not_o material_a the_o understanding_n of_o this_o mystery_n we_o be_v to_o owe_v to_o mr._n s._n his_o ingenuity_n poor_a man_n he_o have_v not_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o intrigue_n of_o that_o court_n they_o do_v not_o love_v to_o have_v arcana_fw-la imperii_fw-la the_o mystery_n of_o their_o government_n discover_v he_o will_v certain_o fall_v short_a of_o his_o expect_a remuneration_n for_o his_o writing_n and_o if_o a_o cap_n be_v depute_v to_o he_o for_o it_o sure_o i_o be_o it_o will_v not_o be_v that_o of_o a_o cardinal_n chap._n iu._n that_o protestant_n have_v a_o great_a security_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n then_o papist_n have_v mr._n i._o s._n his_o ridiculous_a exposition_n and_o impious_a contradict_v of_o st._n paul_n text_n in_o favour_n of_o scripture_n rebuke_v our_o adversary_n triumph_v upon_o the_o aforesaid_a comfort_n of_o papist_n in_o apprehend_v their_o guide_n to_o be_v infallible_a though_o he_o be_v not_o so_o indeed_o which_o comfort_n he_o say_v the_o protestant_n can_v have_v be_v guide_v by_o a_o church_n which_o they_o believe_v be_v not_o so_o well_o assure_v of_o the_o way_n but_o they_o may_v err_v god_n forbid_v protestant_n shall_v not_o have_v a_o better_a warrant_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n then_o that_o he_o give_v to_o papist_n they_o have_v the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n deliver_v all_o their_o doctrine_n and_o clear_o contain_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o a_o perfect_a life_n as_o appear_v evident_o by_o what_o i_o deliver_v in_o the_o discourse_n which_o mr._n i._o s._n go_v about_o to_o oppose_v and_o will_v be_v further_o evidence_v by_o show_v how_o vain_a and_o weak_a the_o opposition_n be_v they_o have_v beside_o in_o the_o general_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n a_o full_a and_o sufficient_a certainty_n that_o the_o book_n common_o receive_v for_o canonical_a be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v certain_a of_o god_n infallible_a authority_n assist_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o verity_n contain_v in_o those_o book_n which_o kind_n of_o certainty_n though_o only_o moral_a touch_v the_o existence_n of_o god_n revelation_n in_o favour_n of_o those_o verity_n join_v with_o a_o absolute_a and_o undoubted_a certainty_n that_o whatsoever_o god_n reveal_v be_v infallible_a verity_n make_v up_o all_o the_o certainty_n that_o a_o pious_a and_o prudent_a believer_n ought_v to_o expect_v in_o matter_n of_o divine_a faith_n mr._n i._o s._n talk_v of_o a_o kind_n of_o certainty_n requisite_a for_o divine_a faith_n which_o i_o doubt_v mu●h_n whether_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o party_n ever_o have_v for_o all_o those_o article_n they_o pretend_v to_o be_v of_o faith_n he_o tell_v we_o and_o take_v it_o upon_o credit_n of_o his_o instructor_n without_o much_o examination_n as_o often_o he_o do_v in_o other_o matter_n that_o for_o all_o act_n of_o belief_n touch_v reveal_v truth_n a_o absolute_a certainty_n be_v requisite_a clear_v the_o believer_n from_o all_o manner_n of_o doubt_n if_o you_o speak_v of_o a_o objective_a certainty_n relate_v to_o the_o mystery_n reveal_v all_o true_a believer_n have_v it_o be_v full_o assure_v that_o god_n can_v reveal_v a_o untruth_n but_o
thus_o hoc_fw-la inveni_fw-la quod_fw-la fecerit_fw-la deus_fw-la hominem_fw-la rectum_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la se_fw-la infinitis_fw-la miscuit_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la and_o in_o the_o 12._o ch._n and_o 12._o v._n he_o say_v that_o of_o many_o book_n there_o be_v no_o end_n the_o question_n determinable_a be_v thus_o unlimited_a the_o faculty_n relate_v to_o they_o for_o a_o unerring_a determination_n must_v be_v likewise_o unlimited_a and_o consequent_o of_o infinite_a perfection_n will_v he_o allow_v so_o much_o to_o the_o pope_n he_o challenge_v i_o often_o and_o defy_v all_o my_o divinity_n to_o answer_v his_o argument_n will_v he_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o challenge_v once_o all_o his_o sophistry_n for_o a_o direct_a and_o formal_a solution_n of_o this_o query_n and_o whilst_o he_o find_v it_o i_o inquire_v second_o whether_o it_o be_v grant_v and_o allow_v that_o god_n have_v lend_v his_o infallibility_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o determine_v without_o error_n all_o question_n possible_a occur_v about_o religion_n whether_o i_o have_v not_o denved_a resolute_o the_o say_a grant_n to_o be_v make_v and_o confute_v the_o foundation_n they_o pretend_v for_o it_o to_o his_o knowledge_n be_v so_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o proper_a kind_n of_o argue_v to_o take_v for_o a_o principle_n against_o we_o the_o conclusion_n in_o debate_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o damnable_a arrogance_n to_o parallel_v his_o pope_n with_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n and_o apostle_n which_o all_o christian_n do_v acknowledge_v and_o reverence_v for_o unerring_a oracle_n of_o god_n to_o declare_v his_o holy_a will_n to_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o insolence_n to_o say_v that_o our_o censure_n upon_o romanist_n for_o attribute_v infallibility_n to_o the_o pope_n shall_v reflect_v upon_o the_o sacred_a organ_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v to_o we_o by_o their_o mouth_n as_o mr._n i._o s._n do_v most_o impious_o pretend_v and_o be_v i_o signify_v the_o censure_n of_o blasphemy_n upon_o their_o pretence_n to_o infallibility_n to_o be_v of_o their_o own_o author_n not_o of_o my_o make_n as_o not_o concern_v for_o aggravate_v their_o crime_n so_o much_o as_o to_o show_v they_o be_v absolute_o in_o a_o error_n i_o will_v further_o declare_v how_o bitter_a they_o be_v in_o censure_v one_o another_o in_o this_o particular_a how_o little_a be_v mr._n i._o s._n assist_v by_o his_o brethren_n for_o his_o singular_a way_n to_o escape_v in_o the_o college_n of_o clermont_n at_o paris_n the_o twelve_o day_n of_o december_n of_o the_o year_n 1661._o be_v defend_v this_o thesis_n as_o a_o catholic_a assertion_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o ten_o age_n damnatas_fw-la age_n christum_fw-la nos_fw-la ita_fw-la caput_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la agnoscimus_fw-la ut_fw-la illius_fw-la regimen_fw-la dum_fw-la in_o calos_fw-la all_o i●t_n primum_fw-la petro_n tum_fw-la deinde_fw-la successer_n thus_o commisern_a &_o candem_fw-la quam_fw-la habebat_fw-la ipse_fw-la infallibilitatem_fw-la concesseris_fw-la quoties_fw-la ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la loquerentur_fw-la datur_fw-la crgo_fw-la in_o ecclesià_fw-la r._n controversiarum_fw-la sidei_fw-la infallibilis_fw-la judex_fw-la ctiam_fw-la extra_fw-la concilium_fw-la generale_fw-mi tum_fw-la in_o quaestionibus_fw-la juris_fw-la ●nm_fw-la facti_fw-la unde_fw-la post_fw-la innocentii_fw-la x._o &_o alexandri_n vii_o constitutiones_fw-la fide_fw-la divina_fw-la credi_fw-la potest_fw-la librum_fw-la cvi_fw-la titulus_fw-la augustinus_n jansenii_n esse_fw-la haereticum_fw-la &_o quin●ue_fw-la propositiones_fw-la ex_fw-la co_fw-la decerptas_fw-la esse_fw-la jansenii_n &_o in_o sensa_fw-la jansenii_n damnatas_fw-la we_o acknowledge_v christ_n to_o be_v so_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o during_o his_o absence_n in_o heaven_n he_o have_v delegated_a the_o government_n thereof_o first_o to_o peter_n and_o then_o to_o his_o successor_n and_o do_v grant_v unto_o they_o the_o very_a same_o infallibility_n which_o himself_o have_v as_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v speak_v è_fw-mi è_fw-mi cathedra_fw-la there_o be_v therefore_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n even_o without_o a_o general_n council_n as_o well_o in_o question_n appertain_v to_o right_n as_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n therefore_o since_o the_o constitution_n of_o innocent_a the_o x._o and_o alexander_n the_o vii_o we_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n that_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o augustin_n of_o jansenius_n be_v heretical_a and_o the_o five_o proposition_n which_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o it_o to_o be_v jansenius_n and_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o jansenius_n condemn_v here_o we_o have_v a_o great_a authorize_v college_n of_o his_o own_o declare_v against_o mr._n i._n s._n that_o the_o pope_n even_o out_o of_o a_o general_n conncil_n be_v infallible_a that_o he_o have_v the_o very_a same_o infallibility_n which_o christ_n himself_o have_v and_o if_o he_o slight_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o college_n which_o may_v not_o be_v safe_a for_o he_o if_o he_o be_v the_o man_n some_o say_v pretend_v to_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o be_v author_n of_o this_o book_n with_o more_o consideration_n he_o may_v find_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o chief_a schoolman_n of_o his_o communion_n to_o be_v against_o he_o such_o as_o be_v 2._o be_v aquin_n 2.2_o q._n 1._o be_v 10._o cajet_fw-fr open_fw-mi de_fw-fr authorit_fw-fr pont._n &_o council_n cap._n 9_o suar._n d._n 5._o sect_n 8._o ban._n in_o come_v brevi_fw-la dub_v conclu_fw-fr 3._o valen._n d._n 1._o q_o 1._o punct_a 7._o sect_n 39_o &_o 40._o mald._n dub_o 5._o turri_n disp_n 16._o dub_v 1._o can._n lib._n 6._o de_fw-la locis_fw-la theolog._n c._n 7.8_o bellar._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr r._n p._n c._n 2._o aqui●as_o cajetanus_n suarez_n bannez_fw-fr valentia_n malderus_n turrianus_n canus_n bellarmin_n and_o many_o other_o whereof_o suarez_n bannez_fw-fr and_o valentia_n declare_v mr._n i.s._n his_o opinion_n to_o be_v heretical_a and_o brand_v for_o such_o in_o the_o bull_n of_o leo_n the_o ten_o condemn_v for_o a_o error_n of_o luther_n this_o proposition_n si_fw-mi papa_n cum_fw-la magna_fw-la parte_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sic_fw-la vel_fw-la sic_fw-la sentiret_fw-la nec_fw-la etiam_fw-la erraret_fw-la adhuc_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la peccatum_fw-la aut_fw-la haeresis_fw-la contrarium_fw-la sentire_fw-la praesertim_fw-la in_o re_fw-la non_fw-la necessariâ_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la donec_fw-la fuerit_fw-la per_fw-la concilium_fw-la vniversale_fw-la alterum_fw-la reprobatum_fw-la alterum_fw-la approbatum_fw-la and_o by_o sixtus_n iv_o in_o a_o council_n of_o fifty_o two_o doctor_n celebrate_v at_o complutum_n in_o the_o year_n 1479._o alphonsus_n carillo_n arch_n bishop_n of_o toledo_n be_v precedent_n in_o it_o against_o petrus_n oxoniensis_n among_o who_o proposition_n condemn_v for_o erroneous_a this_o be_v the_o seven_o ecclesia_fw-la vrbis_fw-la romanae_fw-la errare_fw-la potest_fw-la here_o we_o have_v our_o poor_a antagonist_n his_o peculiar_a way_n of_o defend_v the_o romish_a quarrel_n declare_v for_o heretical_a by_o pope_n and_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o popish_a doctor_n now_o let_v we_o see_v another_o party_n of_o they_o censure_v the_o foresay_a position_n of_o the_o clermont_n college_n for_o a_o horrid_a impiety_n and_o a_o species_n of_o idolatry_n for_o idolatry_n say_v they_o do_v not_o consist_v mere_o in_o give_v to_o man_n the_o name_n of_o god_n but_o infinite_o more_o when_o we_o attribute_v to_o he_o those_o quality_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o god_n and_o when_o we_o render_v he_o those_o honour_n which_o be_v alone_o due_a to_o the_o deity_n now_o this_o entire_a submission_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o of_o all_o our_o intellectual_n comprehend_v in_o the_o act_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v no_o other_o than_o that_o adoration_n which_o we_o pay_v to_o the_o prime_a verity_n itself_o and_o therefore_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o render_v it_o to_o the_o word_n of_o a_o man_n whatever_o rank_n he_o may_v hold_v in_o the_o church_n who_o ever_o say_v that_o he_o believe_v with_o a_o faith_n divine_a that_o which_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v but_o because_o a_o man_n have_v affirm_v it_o do_v constitute_v man_n in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n transfer_v to_o the_o creature_n that_o which_o be_v alone_o due_a to_o the_o creator_n and_o make_v as_o far_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v a_o kind_a of_o idol_n of_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o a_o little_a after_o they_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v a_o formal_a blasphemy_n in_o these_o word_n but_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o offer_v a_o great_a affront_n to_o the_o prime_a minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n then_o to_o conceive_v they_o do_v he_o honour_v by_o a_o blasphemy_n so_o injurious_a to_o jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v they_o to_o equal_v he_o with_o his_o master_n by_o ascribe_v to_o he_o the_o same_o infallibility_n which_o he_o alone_o possess_v and_o that_o man_n shall_v render_v that_o supreme_a cultus_fw-la of_o a_o divine_a faith_n to_o his_o word_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n thus_o the_o party_n opposite_a of_o the_o
the_o untruth_n of_o his_o relation_n that_o he_o must_v not_o expect_v from_o i_o i_o suppose_v he_o find_v this_o doctrine_n which_o he_o say_v to_o be_v common_a in_o the_o protestant_a church_n where_o he_o find_v i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o he_o do_v most_o impudent_o impose_v upon_o i_o in_o his_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o my_o lord_n lieutenant_n this_o be_v their_o ordinary_a way_n of_o beget_v in_o their_o proselyte_n a_o abhorrence_n to_o their_o opposer_n viz._n imposture_n and_o calumny_n of_o their_o calumny_n in_o this_o particular_a learned_a le_fw-fr blane_n complain_v &_o declare_v thus_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o protestant_n cum_fw-la scriptura_fw-la dicimus_fw-la &_o docemus_fw-la fideles_fw-la dei_fw-la mandata_fw-la per_fw-la christi_fw-la gratiam_fw-la seruare_fw-la etc._n etc._n thesi●6_n ●6_z &_o 27._o the_o observant_a leg._n we_o say_v and_o teach_v with_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o faithful_a do_v keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n let_v not_o our_o sophister_n think_v to_o appease_v my_o just_a indignation_n against_o he_o or_o to_o escape_v the_o censure_n i_o pass_v upon_o he_o of_o a_o blasphemous_a contemner_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sacred_a writer_n of_o it_o the_o bless_a evangelist_n by_o say_v he_o do_v not_o assert_v himself_o the_o foresay_a affront_n he_o put_v on_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o evangelist_n but_o that_o he_o infer_v they_o from_o position_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n the_o whole_a doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o in_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n we_o be_v not_o in_o that_o confusion_n and_o uncertainty_n touch_v the_o object_n of_o our_o belief_n as_o he_o and_o his_o party_n be_v betwixt_o so_o many_o article_n daily_o coin_v one_o overthrow_v the_o other_o in_o what_o place_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o of_o the_o foresay_a thirty_o nine_o article_n do_v he_o find_v this_o proposition_n which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v god_n commandment_n which_o be_v all_o the_o ground_n he_o show_v for_o this_o blasphemous_a assertion_n that_o we_o be_v assure_v the_o evangelist_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o observance_n of_o his_o commandment_n and_o by_o that_o assure_a the_o gospel_n be_v not_o infallible_a the_o say_a ground_n i_o say_v not_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o forementioned_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o our_o belief_n i_o conclude_v the_o assertion_n pretend_v to_o flow_v from_o it_o to_o be_v of_o his_o own_o invention_n and_o his_o own_o sentiment_n let_v this_o therefore_o be_v know_v to_o be_v his_o tenet_n and_o assertion_n to_o his_o eternal_a infamy_n that_o we_o be_v sure_o the_o evangelist_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o be_v sure_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o infallible_a one_o that_o be_v find_v with_o a_o steal_a horse_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o thief_n till_o he_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v it_o lawful_o from_o another_o we_o find_v that_o execrable_a blasphemy_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o i._o s._n let_v he_o be_v take_v and_o punish_v for_o author_n of_o it_o if_o any_o just_a inquisition_n find_v he_o since_o he_o can_v find_v no_o other_o author_n for_o it_o but_o all_o his_o sophistry_n will_v not_o afford_v he_o even_o the_o least_o colour_n of_o excuse_n for_o the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o assertion_n for_o which_o he_o will_v not_o be_v behold_v to_o any_o other_o but_o deliver_v it_o for_o a_o document_n of_o his_o own_o that_o no_o text_n of_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o evangelist_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o give_v we_o assurance_n of_o it_o ask_v of_o any_o boy_n in_o spain_n or_o flanders_n but_o mean_o catechize_v whether_o he_o be_v not_o teach_v by_o his_o curate_n and_o parent_n that_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n wherewith_o we_o be_v assure_v they_o never_o lose_v it_o after_o and_o in_o case_n our_o adversary_n shall_v gain_v by_o some_o picture_n or_o medal_n the_o vote_n of_o the_o boy_n in_o his_o favour_n other_o doctor_n we_o have_v which_o he_o shall_v not_o so_o easy_o gain_v to_o his_o side_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o sacred_a apostle_n after_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v in_o grace_n that_o no_o humane_a power_n or_o temptation_n can_v make_v they_o fail_v in_o their_o fidelity_n to_o god_n s._n augustin_n for_o one_o thus_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n homil._n 9_o the_o missione_n spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la ante_fw-la adventum_fw-la vero_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la sub_fw-la ipso_fw-la crucis_fw-la dominicae_fw-la tempore_fw-la alii_fw-la ex_fw-la discipulis_fw-la effugantur_fw-la alii_fw-la unius_fw-la ancillae_fw-la voce_fw-la terrentur_fw-la &_o metu_fw-la corda_fw-la trepida_fw-la penetrante_fw-la dominum_fw-la suum_fw-la negare_fw-la coguntur_fw-la post_fw-la illustrationem_fw-la vero_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la &_o confirmationem_fw-la custodiis_fw-la excruciati_fw-la verberibus_fw-la afflicti_fw-la ibant_fw-la gaudentes_fw-la quia_fw-la digni_fw-la essent_fw-la pro_fw-la christi_fw-la nomine_fw-la contumeliam_fw-la pati_fw-la that_o the_o apostle_n so_o frail_a before_o as_o to_o run_v from_o their_o master_n and_o deny_v he_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o a_o girl_n after_o be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n by_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o constant_a in_o suffer_v prison_n and_o scourge_n that_o they_o rejoice_v for_o be_v worthy_a of_o suffer_v for_o christ_n the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o so_o as_o they_o be_v by_o god_n special_a protection_n preserve_v from_o fall_v from_o it_o all_o their_o life_n though_o otherwise_o peccable_a be_v deliver_v by_o other_o actor_n other_o tertullian_n contra_fw-la prax_v c._n 34._o leo_fw-la magnus_n ser._n 2._o de_fw-fr pentecost_n gregor_n papa_n homil._n 30._o in_o evang._n chrysostom_n homil._n 4._o in_o acta_fw-la apost_n bernard_n ser._n in_o fest_n pentecostes_fw-la aquinas_n qu._n 24._o de_fw-la veritate_fw-la art_n 9_o ad_fw-la 2._o justinianus_n disput_fw-la 1._o ex_fw-la praeviis_fw-la in_o paulum_fw-la c._n 5._o nu_fw-la 7._o corn._n à_fw-fr lap._n ad_fw-la versum_fw-la 3._o c._n 2._o actor_n father_n and_o schoolman_n all_o this_o force_n of_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n father_n and_o divine_n be_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o sacred_a apostle_n to_o have_v be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n and_o preserve_v in_o it_o all_o their_o life_n how_o come_v our_o adversary_n to_o say_v we_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o their_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n do_v they_o not_o write_v it_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v upon_o they_o which_o shall_v we_o admire_v most_o his_o ignorance_n or_o impiety_n true_o he_o have_v give_v such_o testimony_n of_o both_o in_o this_o his_o undertake_n rebuke_v in_o this_o chapter_n that_o we_o may_v very_o well_o bid_v he_o farewell_n here_o and_o leave_v he_o as_o unworthy_a of_o any_o further_a reply_n but_o whereas_o he_o may_v meet_v with_o reader_n so_o short_a sight_v as_o not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o absurdity_n and_o guilt_n even_o of_o this_o size_n we_o will_v continue_v yet_o help_v ●hem_n to_o find_v out_o gross_a error_n and_o crime_n in_o his_o writing_n chap._n ix_o our_o adversary_n pretention_n to_o prescription_n and_o miracle_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n reject_v his_o impose_v on_o i_o and_o on_o the_o church_n of_o england_n discover_v further_o our_o sophister_n find_v but_o little_a right_n by_o scripture_n or_o reason_n for_o the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o his_o church_n appeal_v to_o the_o title_n of_o prescription_n that_o they_o have_v be_v long_a time_n in_o possession_n of_o this_o prerogative_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v disturb_v now_o in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o here_o he_o prepare_v a_o defence_n for_o thief_n and_o robber_n if_o they_o have_v our_o good_n long_o time_n in_o their_o possession_n we_o must_v leave_v they_o to_o such_o possessor_n and_o not_o disturb_v they_o in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o the_o turk_n be_v hereby_o justify_v in_o his_o possession_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o other_o dominion_n of_o christian_a prince_n he_o have_v rob_v the_o attempt_n of_o the_o say_a prince_n in_o dispossess_v this_o robber_n be_v unjust_a according_a to_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o logic._n in_o it_o he_o can_v not_o find_v this_o rule_n of_o law_n
quae_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la sunt_fw-la male_a constituta_fw-la tempore_fw-la non_fw-la convalescunt_fw-la that_o what_o be_v unlawful_a in_o the_o beginning_n grow_v not_o by_o continuance_n lawful_a nor_o this_o other_o non_fw-la debet_fw-la quis_fw-la commodum_fw-la reportare_fw-la ex_fw-la crimine_fw-la none_o ought_v to_o find_v a_o advantage_n in_o a_o guilt_n for_o his_o defence_n a_o unjust_a usurper_n by_o a_o continuance_n of_o his_o usurpation_n be_v render_v rather_o more_o guilty_a than_o excusable_a we_o have_v show_v by_o evident_a proof_n that_o the_o pretention_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o infallibility_n be_v and_o be_v still_o a_o unjust_a usurpation_n a_o robbery_n of_o a_o privilege_n belong_v unto_o god_n and_o his_o holy_a scripture_n communicate_v to_o the_o apostle_n founder_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o to_o the_o church_n true_o catholic_n and_o universal_a stick_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n leave_v to_o we_o not_o to_o that_o factious_a party_n devote_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n which_o mr._n i._o s._n will_v have_v we_o take_v for_o the_o only_a church_n commit_v in_o all_o his_o discourse_n a_o perpetual_a solecism_n against_o the_o law_n of_o a_o disputant_n which_o be_v to_o take_v for_o grant_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o debate_n which_o be_v constant_o deny_v to_o they_o but_o his_o logic_n will_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o these_o nicety_n now_o therefore_o to_o accuse_v we_o that_o we_o disturb_v they_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o their_o infallibility_n be_v like_o the_o complaint_n of_o a_o certain_a gentleman_n against_o a_o merchant_n call_v on_o he_o for_o a_o old_a debt_n he_o rant_v and_o swear_v he_o be_v a_o troublesome_a companion_n for_o importune_v for_o the_o payment_n of_o a_o debt_n of_o so_o many_o year_n as_o if_o it_o be_v but_o of_o yesterday_o his_o delay_n in_o pay_v be_v a_o increase_n of_o his_o guilt_n the_o retain_v of_o another_o man_n good_n as_o well_o as_o the_o take_v they_o away_o against_o his_o will_n be_v robbery_n thus_o it_o be_v in_o our_o case_n the_o pretention_n of_o the_o roman_a faction_n to_o infallibility_n be_v a_o robbery_n from_o the_o beginning_n a_o impose_v upon_o man_n kind_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v and_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o be_v a_o increase_n of_o their_o guilt_n why_o will_v mr._n i._o s._n make_v this_o increase_n of_o their_o guilt_n a_o excuse_n of_o it_o beside_o to_o say_v that_o his_o church_n be_v in_o all_o age_n in_o peaceable_a possession_n of_o this_o prerogative_n of_o infallibility_n as_o he_o do_v pag._n 76._o be_v a_o wide_a mistake_n and_o as_o he_o assert_v it_o without_o proof_n he_o must_v be_v content_v with_o a_o bare_a denial_n for_o a_o answer_n while_o we_o leave_v he_o to_o look_v after_o any_o pertinent_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o nay_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n for_o his_o purpose_n which_o he_o shall_v never_o find_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n p._n 102._o he_o fall_v abrupt_o upon_o the_o old_a armoury_n of_o miracle_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o church_n of_o this_o i_o can_v not_o but_o wonder_n have_v see_v he_o p._n 81._o engage_v his_o whole_a logic_n against_o the_o power_n of_o miracle_n for_o breed_v in_o man_n a_o save_v divine_a faith_n for_o say_v he_o either_o they_o be_v only_o probable_a or_o evident_a if_o probable_a only_a they_o be_v not_o proportionable_a to_o give_v we_o that_o certainty_n require_v for_o divine_a faith_n if_o evident_a absolute_o they_o can_v be_v no_o motive_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v of_o its_o own_o nature_n obscure_a in_o which_o piece_n of_o logic_n he_o give_v a_o clear_a testimony_n of_o his_o impiety_n and_o ignorance_n impiety_n in_o pretend_v to_o weaken_v that_o strong_a foundation_n of_o christian_a belief_n take_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n for_o which_o i_o remit_v he_o to_o what_o he_o allege_v himself_o from_o the_o foresay_a p._n 102._o ignorance_n in_o pretend_v that_o a_o obscure_a conclusion_n may_v not_o be_v deduce_v from_o a_o evident_a premise_v to_o prove_v notum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la a_o conclusion_n clear_a by_o a_o premise_v or_o medium_fw-la more_o obscure_a be_v a_o know_a fault_n in_o argue_v but_o to_o prove_v by_o a_o evident_a medium_fw-la a_o conclusion_n obscure_a be_v a_o fault_n of_o argue_v never_o hear_v of_o yet_o before_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o logic._n by_o this_o canon_n he_o make_v the_o belief_n of_o martha_n to_o be_v indiscreet_a who_o see_v the_o resurrection_n of_o her_o brother_n and_o other_o miracle_n our_o saviour_n wrought_v conclude_v i_o believe_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o miracle_n be_v evident_a but_o the_o generation_n of_o christ_n from_o his_o heavenly_a father_n obscure_a and_o who_o shall_v declare_v his_o generation_n esa_n iii_o 8._o have_v thus_o help_v he_o against_o himself_o for_o render_v miracle_n a_o congruous_a way_n to_o find_v out_o true_a religion_n i_o glad_o accept_v the_o challenge_n to_o a_o trial_n of_o our_o religion_n by_o they_o our_o religion_n or_o the_o object_n of_o our_o necessary_a belief_n be_v only_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o favour_n of_o this_o belief_n we_o have_v all_o the_o miracle_n write_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n their_o religion_n as_o opposite_a to_o we_o and_o differ_v from_o we_o be_v those_o article_n in_o debate_n introduce_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n worship_n of_o image_n etc._n etc._n will_v he_o for_o shame_n pretend_v the_o stock_n of_o romany_n produce_v by_o they_o for_o these_o innovation_n fit_a to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o store_n of_o glorious_a miracle_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o our_o divine_a true_o infallible_a belief_n contain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n while_o we_o show_v his_o new_a belief_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o divine_a faith_n confirm_v with_o miracle_n of_o infallible_a truth_n as_o we_o do_v let_v he_o keep_v to_o himself_o his_o new-coined_a wonder_n and_o remember_v that_o god_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o himself_o in_o put_v his_o seal_n to_o contrary_a law_n and_o if_o he_o must_v believe_v some_o of_o the_o wonder_n he_o propose_v let_v lessius_fw-la and_o other_o help_v he_o to_o understand_v what_o to_o make_v of_o those_o miracle_n or_o wonder_n which_o valerius_n maximus_n titus_n livius_n and_o other_o roman_a historian_n do_v relate_v to_o have_v be_v wrought_v in_o favour_n of_o their_o temple_n and_o heathenish_a superstition_n and_o let_v he_o not_o expect_v from_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v bestow_v time_n in_o examine_v the_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n of_o all_o his_o impertinent_a allegation_n in_o the_o same_o seven_o chapter_n from_o p._n 126._o he_o fasten_v on_o i_o two_o notorious_a calumny_n first_o that_o have_v leave_v the_o roman_a church_n i_o fix_v upon_o no_o other_o to_o be_v of_o the_o second_o that_o i_o say_v none_o may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o first_o be_v see_v by_o my_o public_a declaration_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o untruth_n of_o the_o other_o i_o declare_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n whereby_o all_o his_o verbosity_n upon_o this_o subject_n appear_v a_o fret_n of_o his_o malice_n without_o any_o real_a ground_n without_o shame_n to_o tax_v i_o often_o with_o and_o repete_fw-la with_o his_o frivolous_a exclamation_n without_o show_v where_o or_o when_o i_o do_v say_v what_o indeed_o i_o never_o say_v or_o write_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o roman_a catholic_a religion_n with_o the_o same_o confidence_n and_o the_o like_a untruth_n he_o repete_v that_o it_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o the_o romish_a religion_n be_v a_o save_a religion_n or_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n which_o be_v what_o we_o deny_v they_o let_v the_o reader_n reflect_v upon_o what_o i_o say_v in_o the_o foresay_a second_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o see_v the_o confusion_n of_o this_o man_n brain_n in_o not_o understand_v or_o deliver_v distinct_o our_o sentiment_n according_a to_o our_o own_o expression_n or_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o mind_n in_o deceive_v wilful_o his_o reader_n especial_o that_o he_o himself_o p._n 133._o allege_v doctor_n stillingfleet_n compare_v both_o church_n the_o romish_a to_o a_o leaky_a ship_n wherein_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v but_o with_o great_a danger_n and_o difficulty_n and_o the_o protestant_n to_o a_o sound_a ship_n wherein_o one_o may_v be_v save_v without_o hazard_n this_o be_v the_o utmost_a of_o courtesy_n or_o charity_n that_o may_v be_v and_o be_v extend_v to_o they_o be_v this_o to_o say_v the_o romish_a church_n be_v a_o
you_o speak_v all_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o degree_n of_o necessity_n to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v by_o all_o man_n therefore_o to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o point_n not_o fundamental_a be_v fallible_a be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fallible_a which_o without_o controversy_n be_v a_o formal_a blasphemy_n poor_a logician_n be_v this_o your_o argument_n in_o ferio_n for_o which_o you_o think_v a_o solid_a answer_n can_v not_o be_v find_v for_o a_o syllogism_n in_o feri●_n to_o be_v conclude_v the_o premise_n must_v be_v allow_v and_o will_v you_o have_v we_o allow_v your_o premise_n when_o one_o of_o they_o be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o formal_a blasphemy_n but_o it_o seem_v this_o horrible_a blasphemy_n do_v not_o fall_v from_o he_o unaware_o it_o be_v with_o deliberation_n he_o go_v to_o prove_v it_o and_o see_v how_o the_o church_n can_v err_v and_o be_v fallible_a in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a therefore_o these_o point_n be_v fallible_a this_o be_v another_o goodly_a piece_n of_o logic_n which_o prove_v that_o point_n fundamental_a be_v likewise_o fallible_a man_n can_v err_v and_o have_v err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a therefore_o these_o also_o be_v fallible_a in_o your_o dialect_n this_o be_v not_o to_o distinguish_v subjective_a fallibility_n from_o the_o objective_n to_o pass_v the_o imperfection_n of_o the_o faculty_n upon_o the_o object_n mr._n i._o s._n look_v upon_o the_o sun_n with_o squint_a or_o dim_a eye_n therefore_o the_o sun_n be_v dim_a or_o squint_a the_o pope_n can_v err_v and_o be_v fallible_a in_o declare_v the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fallible_a your_o brethren_n of_o clermont_n college_n who_o defend_v in_o their_o thesis_n mention_v chap._n 6._o that_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o same_o infallibility_n which_o christ_n have_v may_v think_v that_o consequence_n legal_a the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a about_o the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fallible_a because_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o very_a same_o infallibility_n which_o christ_n the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n have_v but_o we_o that_o a_o low_a no_o such_o equality_n of_o truth_n to_o man_n can_v take_v fallibility_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o a_o consequence_n of_o man_n fallibility_n about_o it_o from_o the_o foresay_a position_n you_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o grand_a thesis_n prefix_a to_o your_o chapter_n that_o protestant_n can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n this_o be_v sure_a a_o rare_a show_n of_o your_o wit_n a_o product_n of_o your_o own_o invention_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o i_o confess_v to_o have_v never_o hear_v the_o like_a and_o thus_o you_o go_v to_o prove_v it_o protestancy_n or_o the_o point_n wherein_o protestant_n do_v differ_v from_o papist_n be_v but_o a_o parcel_n of_o fallible_a doctrine_n but_o no_o fallible_a doctrine_n can_v without_o blasphemy_n be_v seek_v for_o in_o scripture_n therefore_o protestant_n can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n make_v of_o the_o major_n what_o you_o please_v for_o the_o present_a what_o desperate_a proposition_n be_v that_o of_o the_o minor_a that_o no_o fallible_a doctrine_n may_v without_o blasphemy_n be_v seek_v for_o in_o scripture_n by_o this_o all_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n all_o divine_n that_o allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o several_a opinion_n which_o they_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v infallible_a nor_o more_o than_o probable_a opinion_n be_v guilty_a of_o blasphemy_n in_o your_o esteem_n but_o that_o this_o so_o much_o solemnize_v argument_n may_v not_o be_v altogether_o useless_a i_o will_v retort_v it_o upon_o yourself_o with_o more_o force_n and_o less_o cavil_n prove_v by_o it_o that_o your_o church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o thus_o i_o argue_v for_o it_o in_o your_o own_o term_n no_o church_n be_v any_o further_a the_o church_n of_o christ_n then_o as_o it_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o condistinct_a from_o the_o reform_a protestant_n church_n or_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o differ_v from_o it_o do_v not_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o condistinct_a from_o the_o reform_a protestant_n church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o minor_a proposition_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o condistinct_a from_o the_o protestant_a church_n do_v not_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n i_o prove_v thus_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o condistinct_a from_o the_o protestant_n and_o opposite_a to_o it_o do_v teach_v be_v pope_n infallibility_n and_o supremacy_n over_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n transubstantiation_n worship_n of_o image_n invocation_n of_o saint_n purgatory_n indulgence_n half_a communion_n liturgy_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n prohibit_v the_o people_n to_o read_v holy_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o my_o former_a discourse_n not_o to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o all_o contrary_a to_o it_o and_o in_o this_o present_a treatise_n will_v more_o full_o declare_v the_o same_o therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o condistinct_a from_o the_o protestant_n and_o opposite_a to_o it_o do_v not_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n chap._n xi_o a_o refutation_n of_o several_a other_o attemt_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n in_o that_o eight_o chapter_n you_o be_v prolix_a in_o pretend_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o unity_n of_o faith_n with_o papist_n god_n forbid_v they_o shall_v agree_v in_o all_o with_o they_o spare_v brag_v that_o they_o claim_v kindred_n with_o you_o it_o be_v a_o great_a piece_n of_o courtesy_n and_o charity_n in_o protestant_n to_o admit_v kindred_n with_o you_o or_o allow_v you_o to_o be_v a_o part_n though_o infect_v and_o corrupt_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o courtesy_n i_o say_v in_o some_o thing_n like_o that_o of_o bellarmin_n in_o admit_v even_o the_o most_o scandalous_o wicked_a of_o man_n epicure_n in_o manner_n and_o atheist_n in_o belief_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o church_n provide_v they_o do_v but_o exterior_o own_o the_o romish_a religion_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n though_o but_o for_o temporal_a end_n his_o kindness_n to_o his_o lord_n the_o pope_n and_o zeal_n for_o his_o grandeur_n make_v he_o extend_v thus_o his_o courtesy_n our_o love_n to_o our_o lord_n christ_n make_v we_o admit_v kindred_n with_o you_o and_o to_o take_v you_o for_o member_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o confess_v with_o we_o though_o but_o verbal_o the_o chief_a article_n of_o his_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n you_o proceed_v to_o exhort_v protestant_n to_o a_o examen_fw-la of_o their_o belief_n whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n i_o wish_v your_o party_n do_v comply_v so_o well_o herein_o with_o their_o duty_n or_o be_v permit_v to_o do_v it_o as_o protestant_n do_v and_o be_v allow_v here_o they_o inquire_v dispute_n and_o read_v careful_o book_n for_o and_o against_o their_o tenet_n they_o be_v permit_v to_o do_v it_o and_o encourage_v in_o it_o by_o their_o instructor_n you_o will_v not_o allow_v your_o people_n to_o read_v dispute_n or_o doubt_v at_o all_o of_o your_o tenet_n you_o say_v protestant_n be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o doubt_v of_o their_o religion_n while_o you_o tell_v your_o own_o people_n they_o be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n not_o to_o doubt_v of_o they_o how_o come_v your_o church_n by_o this_o prerogative_n because_o it_o be_v unerring_a and_o unerrable_a as_o the_o title_n of_o your_o book_n say_v but_o the_o book_n do_v not_o prove_v as_o we_o be_v show_v why_o be_v protestant_n oblige_v to_o doubt_n of_o their_o religion_n because_o it_o be_v new_a say_v you_o this_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o pagan_n to_o stop_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n more_o improper_o and_o with_o less_o ground_n use_v by_o you_o our_o religion_n be_v the_o ancient_n and_o you_o the_o new_a as_o we_o prove_v where_o be_v our_o religion_n say_v you_o before_o luther_n a_o question_n which_o for_o one_o too_o old_a shall_v be_v cast_v away_o we_o answer_v where_o your_o never_o be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o true_a record_n of_o primitive_a christianity_n you_o conclude_v your_o heterogeneous_a chapter_n and_o your_o first_o part_n of_o your_o book_n with_o mention_v the_o treatise_n or_o paper_n i_o pen_v some_o year_n ago_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o protestant_n against_o your_o vulgar_a teacher_n damn_v all_o to_o hell_n for_o heretic_n without_o reserve_n or_o distinction_n you_o say_v the_o doctrine_n i_o deliver_v be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v indiscretion_n to_o declare_v it_o in_o
to_o establish_v as_o the_o chief_a of_o his_o concern_n be_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o absolute_a power_n over_o all_o christian_n direct_o forsooth_o spiritual_n but_o effective_o in_o their_o temporal_a concern_v as_o many_o powerful_a prince_n kingdom_n and_o province_n have_v experience_v to_o their_o woe_n these_o two_o great_a prerogative_n of_o absolute_a power_n over_o all_o christian_n and_o of_o infallibility_n in_o his_o decree_n such_o as_o none_o may_v oppose_v or_o mutter_v against_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o pope_n what_o security_n can_v people_n or_o prince_n have_v of_o their_o liberty_n or_o possession_n if_o liable_a to_o be_v censure_v heretic_n if_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v and_o submit_v to_o any_o thing_n the_o pope_n will_v be_v please_v to_o decree_v and_o declare_v for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v thus_o censure_v to_o have_v their_o liberty_n and_o land_n seize_v upon_o and_o take_v from_o they_o by_o any_o that_o will_v have_v force_n to_o do_v it_o next_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v the_o dangerous_a consequence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n in_o the_o daily_a extent_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n and_o authority_n by_o his_o emissary_n and_o flatterer_n hitherto_o they_o be_v content_v to_o assert_v his_o infallibility_n in_o matter_n of_o right_a now_o of_o late_o they_o extend_v it_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o famous_a thesis_n of_o the_o parisian_a jesuit_n declare_v above_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n and_o though_o another_o party_n oppose_v that_o assertion_n of_o they_o as_o mention_v in_o the_o place_n aforesaid_a all_o man_n know_v how_o little_a success_n any_o may_v expect_v to_o have_v in_o the_o roman_a judicature_n against_o such_o as_o will_v engage_v in_o exalt_v and_o extend_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o the_o jesuit_n have_v not_o only_o obtain_v a_o censure_n of_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n etc._n etc._n agha_v the_o doctrine_n of_o cornelius_n jansenius_n where_o the_o debate_n be_v in_o matter_n of_o right_n but_o another_o arise_v touch_v the_o fact_n whether_o jansenius_n do_v indeed_o deliver_v such_o a_o doctrine_n they_o obtain_v wise_a from_o the_o succeed_a pope_n alexander_n the_o 7_o a_o bull_n and_o decree_n no_o less_o peremptory_a touch_v the_o fact_n declare_v the_o say_a proposition_n censure_v by_o his_o predecessor_n to_o be_v real_o contain_v in_o jansenius_n his_o book_n and_o which_o be_v more_o wonderful_a he_o shall_v know_v in_o the_o sense_n intend_v by_o jansenius_n the_o foresay_a swear_v defender_n and_o exalter_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n have_v defend_v public_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n the_o say_a declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o jansenius_n as_o well_o in_o matter_n of_o right_a as_o fact_n to_o be_v infallible_a by_o these_o notable_a word_n fide_fw-la divinâ_fw-la credi_fw-la potest_fw-la librum_fw-la cvi_fw-la titulus_fw-la augustinus_n jansenii_n esse_fw-la haereticum_fw-la &_o quinque_fw-la propositiones_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la decerptas_fw-la esse_fw-la jansenii_n &_o in_o sensu_fw-la jansenii_n damnatas_fw-la that_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o augustin_n of_o jansenius_n be_v heretical_a and_o the_o five_o proposition_n which_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o it_o be_v jansenius_n and_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o jansenius_n condemn_v and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n but_o we_o may_v expect_v a_o command_n of_o believe_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n in_o this_o latter_a kind_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o former_o intimate_v in_o matter_n of_o right_a and_o if_o this_o be_v establish_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a also_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o if_o he_o be_v please_v to_o declare_v that_o any_o of_o we_o in_o particular_a be_v a_o heretic_n or_o have_v deliver_v a_o heretical_a proposition_n woe_n be_v to_o he_o so_o declare_v a_o heretic_n by_o the_o pope_n all_o christian_n subject_n to_o the_o pope_n must_v take_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n and_o proceed_v against_o he_o according_o with_o all_o those_o severity_n inflict_v by_o canon_n against_o heretic_n mr._n i._o s._n accuse_v i_o to_o the_o lord_n licutenant_n of_o ireland_n that_o i_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o catholic_a hurch_n a_o proposition_n in_o my_o own_o opinion_n heretical_a and_o blasphemous_a take_v in_o its_o proper_a literal_a and_o right_a sense_n not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o crooked_a improper_a sense_n which_o mr._n i._o s._n may_v pretend_v and_o may_v render_v my_o discourse_n obscure_a this_o testimony_n so_o evident_o false_a he_o impose_v upon_o i_o my_o book_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o many_o hundred_o man_n and_o myself_o live_v to_o declare_v the_o falsehood_n of_o it_o yet_o his_o confidence_n be_v such_o that_o have_v no_o evidence_n nor_o as_o much_o as_o attemt_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o accusation_n he_o will_v have_v my_o lord_n lieutenant_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o utmost_a severity_n against_o i_o command_v i_o to_o be_v burn_v for_o blasphemous_a ill_o may_v he_o expect_v from_o his_o excellency_n so_o unjust_a and_o rash_a a_o judgement_n but_o how_o far_o he_o may_v speed_v in_o rome_n with_o the_o same_o accusation_n though_o false_a i_o may_v not_o know_v of_o their_o integrity_n proceed_v to_o judgement_n without_o hear_v the_o party_n i_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n if_o they_o declare_v i_o for_o author_n of_o the_o proposition_n impose_v upon_o i_o by_o mr._n i._o s._n that_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o consequent_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n and_o all_o must_v take_v their_o declaration_n therein_o for_o infallible_a according_a to_o that_o increase_n of_o infallibility_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n ascribe_v of_o late_a to_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o prime_a favourite_n what_o mischief_n may_v not_o i_o expect_v from_o all_o those_o who_o think_v it_o a_o special_a service_n of_o god_n to_o destroy_v herety_n but_o my_o particular_a concern_n be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a a_o force_n to_o declare_v the_o enormity_n or_o danger_n of_o this_o consequence_n he_o accuse_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o protestant_n of_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n say_v it_o be_v their_o common_a doctrine_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v god_n commandment_n which_o proposition_n in_o its_o literal_a full_a sense_n be_v certain_o heretical_a and_o blasphemous_a for_o derogatory_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o goodness_n and_o diametrical_o opposite_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o 8_o chapter_n where_o also_o i_o have_v show_v how_o false_o such_o a_o doctrine_n be_v impose_v upon_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o england_n but_o if_o our_o adversary_n get_v a_o definition_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o we_o be_v in_o effect_n guilty_a of_o that_o error_n in_o what_o condition_n shall_v we_o stand_v with_o our_o neighbour_n our_o innocency_n in_o the_o case_n will_v not_o avail_v what_o if_o mr._n i._o s._n or_o other_o like_o he_o will_v accuse_v some_o great_a christian_a prince_n of_o heresy_n though_o with_o as_o little_a truth_n as_o we_o have_v see_v his_o accusation_n of_o i_o and_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n now_o mention_v to_o have_v proceed_v but_o if_o the_o malice_n of_o neighbour_n hunt_v after_o the_o land_n of_o such_o a_o prince_n and_o of_o his_o subject_n dispose_v to_o rebel_n against_o he_o shall_v join_v to_o accuse_v he_o of_o heretical_a pravity_n and_o the_o pope_n thereby_o shall_v proceed_v to_o deliver_v his_o infallible_a judgement_n touch_v such_o a_o prince_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n in_o effect_n in_o what_o miserable_a condition_n must_v that_o prince_n be_v for_o credit_n and_o interest_n to_o be_v take_v by_o all_o man_n for_o a_o undoubted_a heretic_n his_o subject_n absolve_v from_o their_o allegiance_n to_o he_o and_o his_o land_n expose_v to_o the_o prey_n of_o any_o strong_a hand_n autorize_v by_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o the_o procedure_n of_o that_o court_n whereof_o many_o dismal_a tragedy_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n germany_n navarre_n and_o other_o kingdom_n of_o europe_n to_o establish_v this_o power_n in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n so_o destructive_a to_o the_o peace_n and_o safety_n of_o christian_a people_n and_o prince_n be_v the_o aim_n of_o mr._n i._n s._n his_o tedious_a and_o intricate_a discourse_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o pretend_a unerring_a unerrable_a church_n and_o that_o declare_v by_o himself_o he_o may_v expect_v the_o time_n when_o all_o christian_a people_n be_v perfect_o blind_a and_o mad_a to_o have_v his_o doctrine_n receive_v and_o now_o have_v see_v how_o unsuccessful_a he_o have_v be_v in_o set_v up_o the_o grand_a engine_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n govern_v by_o the_o pope_n by_o
old_a law_n the_o case_n propose_v above_o of_o hezekiah_n and_o josiah_n do_v assure_v we_o that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o best_a king_n of_o those_o time_n and_o if_o you_o consult_v the_o act_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a of_o arcadius_n and_o honorius_n of_o theodosius_n the_o elder_a justinian_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o other_o the_o best_a of_o christian_a emperor_n and_o great_a supporter_n of_o the_o church_n honour_n you_o shall_v find_v they_o intervening_a frequent_o and_o moderate_v the_o great_a consultation_n touch_v religion_n and_o the_o good_a conduct_n of_o church_n affair_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o s._n augustin_n that_o any_o shall_v doubt_v it_o shall_v be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o emperor_n or_o prince_n to_o do_v so_o 9_o so_o aug._n l._n 1._o in_o epist_n contra_fw-la ep._n parm_n c._n 9_o an_fw-mi forte_fw-fr de_fw-fr religione_fw-la fas_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la dicat_fw-la imperator_fw-la vel_fw-la quos_fw-la miserit_fw-la imperator_fw-la what_o do_v it_o not_o belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n or_o to_o he_o he_o employ_v to_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n touch_v religion_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v that_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a care_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o which_o he_o be_v to_o give_v account_n to_o god_n 50.162_o god_n aug._n ep._n 50.162_o ad_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la curam_fw-la de_fw-la quâ_fw-la rationem_fw-la deo_fw-la redditurus_fw-la est_fw-la res_fw-la illa_fw-la maximè_fw-la pertinebat_fw-la all_o this_o be_v so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o our_o prince_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o state_n and_o affair_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o the_o dut●_n of_o subject_n to_o obey_v they_o in_o all_o and_o that_o for_o conscience_n as_o s._n paul_n declare_v rom._n 13.5_o that_o you_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_a not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n how_o can_v i_o omit_v to_o condole_v the_o misery_n of_o my_o countryman_n and_o other_o so_o delude_v by_o the_o art_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o take_v it_o for_o a_o breach_n of_o conscience_n what_o s._n paul_n declare_v to_o be_v a_o duty_n of_o conscience_n i_o mean_v a_o acknowledgement_n of_o their_o prince_n supreme_a authority_n over_o all_o his_o subject_n and_o their_o obligation_n of_o obey_v he_o according_o especial_o when_o i_o see_v what_o s._n bernard_n see_v and_o lament_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o welfare_n of_o soul_n nor_o the_o zeal_n of_o their_o salvation_n make_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o put_v this_o horror_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n against_o their_o dutyful_a obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o their_o prince_n non_fw-la quod_fw-la valdè_fw-la romani_fw-la curant_fw-la quo_fw-la sine_fw-la res_fw-la terminetur_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la valdè_fw-la diligunt_fw-la munera_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la retributiones_fw-la not_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o rome_n do_v regard_n much_o the_o end_n or_o purpose_n of_o controversy_n raise_v so_o they_o obtain_v their_o own_o end_n of_o increase_a their_o own_o interest_n and_o power_n i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n with_o s._n bernard_n that_o these_o corruption_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o so_o public_a and_o know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n senonens_fw-la world_n bernard_n ep._n 42._o ad_fw-la archiep._n senonens_fw-la utinam_fw-la nobis_fw-la relinquerent_fw-la moderni_fw-la noae_n unde_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la possint_fw-la aliquatenus_fw-la operiri_fw-la nunc_fw-la vero_fw-la cernente_fw-la orb_n mundi_fw-la fabulam_fw-la soli_fw-la tacebimus_fw-la i_o wish_v these_o modern_a noah_n do_v leave_v unto_o we_o some_o possibility_n of_o cover_v their_o shame_n but_o all_o the_o world_n behold_v it_o shall_v we_o alone_o conceal_v it_o this_o be_v so_o consider_v mr._n i._n s._n how_o blind_a be_v your_o zeal_n or_o great_a your_o malice_n in_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o cruelty_n in_o our_o prince_n to_o demand_v from_o their_o subject_n a_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o supreme_a power_n over_o they_o and_o in_o they_o a_o blasphemy_n to_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o to_o make_v we_o believe_v it_o be_v so_o you_o produce_v the_o authority_n of_o calvin_n when_o i_o allege_v vasquez_n or_o suarez_n his_o doctrine_n to_o you_o if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o your_o like_n you_o tell_v i_o they_o have_v be_v mistake_v as_o well_o as_o i_o so_o much_o i_o say_v to_o you_o at_o present_a of_o calvin_n that_o if_o he_o be_v of_o your_o mind_n in_o this_o particular_a he_o be_v mistake_v and_o in_o a_o foul_a error_n as_o well_o as_o you_o calvin_n and_o luther_n have_v no_o more_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o suarez_n and_o vasquez_n among_o you_o and_o i_o observe_v you_o be_v as_o singular_o impertinent_a as_o unreasonable_a wheresoever_o you_o speak_v to_o i_o of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n it_o be_v not_o their_o writing_n which_o i_o never_o see_v bring_v i_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o conserves_n i_o in_o it_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n do_v work_n both_o upon_o i_o of_o they_o you_o be_v to_o speak_v to_o i_o as_o i_o do_v to_o you_o many_o a_o thousand_o poor_a simple_a soul_n in_o these_o kingdom_n mislead_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o busy_a emissary_n do_v cry_n against_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n without_o know_v or_o examine_v what_o it_o mean_v or_o what_o be_v their_o prince_n meaning_n in_o demand_v it_o cry_v up_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n much_o like_o those_o 200._o seduce_v by_o absalon_n to_o follow_v he_o out_o of_o jerusalem_n to_o rebel_v against_o the_o king_n his_o father_n when_o they_o think_v they_o do_v service_n to_o the_o king_n and_o with_o absalon_n go_v two_o hundred_o man_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v call_v and_o they_o go_v in_o their_o simplicity_n and_o they_o know_v not_o any_o thing_n 2._o sam._n 15.11_o so_o it_o be_v with_o many_o seduce_v by_o the_o art_n and_o activity_n of_o rome_n to_o den●_n due_a submission_n to_o their_o lawful_a prince_n and_o give_v it_o to_o a_o foreign_a usurper_n under_o pretext_n of_o follow_v a_o pretend_a vicar_n of_o god_n to_o rebel_v against_o god_n s._n paul_n declare_v that_o whosoever_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n a_o conclusion_n he_o do_v very_o legal_o infer_v from_o a_o verity_n he_o have_v immediate_o before_o premise_v that_o the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n rom._n 13.1.2_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o charity_n that_o many_o have_v the_o excuse_n of_o those_o 200._o seduce_v by_o absalon_n that_o they_o go_v in_o their_o simplicity_n and_o they_o know_v not_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o corruption_n and_o imposture_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o universal_o know_v even_o in_o s._n bernard_n time_n as_o declare_v above_o and_o much_o more_o now_o we_o may_v fear_v just_o that_o too_o many_o do_v err_v with_o knowledge_n or_o for_o want_n of_o due_a inquiry_n and_o so_o resist_v lawful_a power_n they_o may_v receive_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n of_o which_o latter_a sort_n mr._n i._n s._n may_v serious_o fear_v himself_o to_o be_v one_o if_o he_o be_v so_o conversant_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o both_o church_n protestant_n and_o popish_a and_o in_o that_o of_o primitive_a christianity_n as_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v this_o i_o commend_v to_o his_o mature_a consideration_n while_o i_o pursue_v he_o in_o his_o engagement_n about_o transubstantiation_n chap._n xviii_o our_o adversary_n essay_n in_o favour_n of_o transubstantiation_n examine_v his_o challenge_n for_o solve_v two_o syllogism_n answer_v mr._n i._o s._n i_o do_v general_o find_v you_o unexact_v and_o much_o unlike_o a_o scholar_n in_o your_o argument_n but_o more_o when_o you_o boast_v most_o and_o stand_v in_o defiance_n now_o you_o defy_v all_o my_o divinity_n to_o answer_v two_o syllogism_n you_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v to_o be_v of_o your_o own_o invention_n but_o a_o piece_n of_o my_o logic_n will_v make_v both_o appear_v paralogism_n unworthy_a of_o any_o answer_n no_o formal_a syllogism_n the_o first_o ground_v upon_o luke_n 22.19_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o run_v thus_o he_o give_v to_o they_o what_o he_o give_v for_o they_o but_o what_o he_o give_v for_o they_o be_v not_o a_o sigure_n but_o his_o real_a and_o true_a body_n therefore_o what_o he_o give_v to_o they_o be_v not_o a_o figure_n but_o his_o real_a and_o true_a body_n in_o this_o syllogism_n nothing_o be_v new_a but_o the_o form_n you_o give_v it_o and_o that_o guilty_a of_o several_a vice_n against_o the_o rule_n of_o logic._n i_o say_v nothing_o be_v new_a in_o your_o argument_n nor_o any_o sense_n or_o force_v add_v to_o it_o by_o pass_v the_o case_n from_o christ_n give_v the_o last_o supper_n to_o christ_n suffer_v upon_o the_o cross_n all_o your_o syllogism_n may_v be_v
the_o word_n substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v mean_v the_o accident_n or_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o do_v remain_v and_o be_v to_o we_o the_o mean_n of_o know_v the_o substance_n and_o may_v not_o be_v call_v proper_o accident_n in_o this_o case_n because_o there_o be_v no_o substance_n leave_v for_o they_o to_o rest_v upon_o as_o the_o nature_n and_o common_a notion_n of_o a_o accident_n do_v require_v and_o have_v deliver_v this_o most_o strange_a and_o never_o hear_v of_o complication_n of_o contradictory_n expression_n to_o make_v of_o accident_n a_o substance_n and_o with_o all_o no_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o remain_v he_o sound_v loud_o a_o triumph_n over_o his_o adversary_n that_o he_o have_v whip_v they_o like_o boy_n with_o their_o own_o arm_n and_o although_o it_o be_v allow_v gratis_o that_o the_o foresay_a testimony_n shall_v be_v of_o pope_n gelasius_n yet_o it_o serve_v nothing_o to_o their_o purpose_n i_o can_v enlarge_v more_o upon_o the_o absurdity_n of_o baronius_n his_o discourse_n upon_o that_o subject_n and_o the_o injury_n he_o do_v to_o gelasius_n in_o father_v upon_o he_o so_o ridiculous_a a_o paradox_n but_o i_o think_v sufficient_a for_o the_o present_a to_o let_v the_o reader_n see_v how_o solid_a and_o serious_a i_o shall_v say_v how_o childish_a and_o ridiculous_a even_o great_a man_n appear_v when_o engage_v in_o a_o bad_a cause_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v that_o some_o will_v hardly_o believe_v so_o great_a a_o man_n as_o cardinal_n baronius_n shall_v deliver_v so_o eminent_a nonsense_n as_o we_o have_v now_o relate_v read_v he_o in_o his_o five_o tome_n of_o his_o annal_n an._n dom._n 406._o gelasii_fw-la papae_fw-la a_o 5._o from_o the_o first_o number_n to_o the_o twenty_o and_o conclude_v reader_n from_o this_o passage_n what_o little_a hope_n we_o may_v have_v of_o peace_n and_o end_n of_o controversy_n among_o christian_n by_o allow_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a when_o the_o most_o clear_a and_o plain_a word_n of_o a_o pope_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o interpretation_n of_o they_o so_o cross_v and_o diametrical_o opposite_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o according_a to_o common_a use_n as_o to_o understand_v scripture_n a_o pope_n declaration_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v necessary_a so_o to_o understand_v each_o pope_n his_o declaration_n another_o infallible_a judge_n be_v to_o be_v look_v after_o without_o end_n chap._n xx._n ancient_a schoolman_n declare_v transubstantiation_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n mr._n i._o s._n his_o great_a boast_n of_o find_v in_o my_o check_n to_o their_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n a_o prejudice_n to_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n declare_v to_o be_v void_a of_o sense_n and_o ground_n mr._n i._o s._n with_o his_o usual_a confidence_n say_v it_o be_v most_o false_a what_o i_o impute_v to_o scotus_n ocham_n cajetan_n and_o other_o schoolman_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n nor_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n he_o allow_v cajetan_n be_v of_o that_o opinion_n and_o be_v censored_a for_o it_o he_o err_v therein_o say_v he_o and_o what_o then_o but_o he_o deny_v resolute_o that_o scotus_n shall_v be_v of_o such_o a_o opinion_n then_o bellarmin_n do_v he_o a_o injur_n in_o relate_v the_o contrary_a of_o he_o in_o these_o word_n one_o thing_n say_v he_o scotus_n add_v which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v approve_v that_o before_o the_o lateran_n council_n transustantiation_n be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o little_a before_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o scotus_n say_v there_o be_v no_o place_n in_o scripture_n that_o prove_v clear_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v admit_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o intervene_v where_o bellarmin_n add_v scotus_n his_o say_n not_o to_o be_v improbable_a for_o though_o the_o scripture_n himself_o allege_v may_v seem_v clear_a to_o the_o purpose_n yet_o even_o that_o transidistantia●●enem_fw-la that_o vnum_fw-la taeman_n addit_fw-la scotus_n qu●d_fw-la minimè_fw-la probandum_fw-la est_fw-la ante●ateranense_fw-fr ●ateranense_z consilium_fw-la non_fw-la fuisse_fw-la dogina_fw-la fides_n transidistantia●●enem_fw-la may_v be_v doubt_v whereas_o most_o learned_a and_o acute_a man_n such_o as_o scotus_n chief_o be_v do_v hold_v the_o contrary_n these_o be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o bellarmin_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr euchar._n c._n 23._o here_o you_o have_v bellarmin_n declare_v clear_o against_o mr._n i._n s._n that_o scotus_n say_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n and_o that_o both_o scotus_n and_o other_o most_o learned_a and_o acute_a man_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o true_o though_o i_o have_v not_o see_v scotus_n his_o writing_n upon_o the_o point_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o believe_v that_o mr._n i._o s._n shall_v be_v mistake_v rather_o than_o bellarmin_n but_o i_o have_v read_v over_o scotus_n his_o discourse_n upon_o this_o subject_n not_o only_o in_o the_o print_a edition_n but_o in_o the_o ancient_a ms._n keep_v in_o merton_n coll._n in_o oxon._n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o fellow_n with_o no_o small_a admiration_n and_o compassion_n to_o see_v so_o noble_a and_o excellent_a a_o wit_n force_v to_o opine_n or_o seem_v to_o opine_n against_o his_o proper_a sentiment_n as_o he_o do_v protest_v himself_o to_o do_v to_o comply_v with_o pope_n innocent_a and_o the_o lateran_n council_n have_v state_v the_o question_n of_o transubstantiation_n relate_v the_o opinion_n of_o aquinas_n and_o other_o for_o it_o and_o confute_v most_o vigorous_o their_o argument_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o reason_n for_o it_o as_o not_o convince_a at_o last_o yield_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o innocent_a in_o these_o word_n teneo_fw-la igitur_fw-la istam_fw-la opinionem_fw-la ibi_fw-la positam_fw-la ab_fw-la innocentio_n quod_fw-la substantia_fw-la panis_fw-la non_fw-la maneat_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la transubstantiatur_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la propter_fw-la rationes_fw-la praedictas_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la cogunt_fw-la for_o which_o opinion_n to_o say_v something_o be_v force_v to_o follow_v it_o he_o allege_v two_o convenience_n the_o first_o that_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v remain_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o it_o a_o man_n take_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n under_o such_o accident_n will_v not_o be_v fast_v and_o so_o may_v not_o celebrate_v twice_o in_o one_o day_n which_o be_v against_o that_o canon_n de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi distinct_a primâ_fw-la in_o nocte_fw-la the_o second_o conveniency_n be_v that_o the_o church_n pray_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n may_v be_v make_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n but_o pray_v not_o for_o a_o thing_n impossible_a therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v say_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n cease_v to_o be_v there_o and_o be_v convert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n whoever_o know_v the_o subtlety_n and_o exactness_n of_o scotus_n his_o reason_n may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o he_o speak_v against_o his_o own_o sentiment_n when_o he_o allege_v such_o weak_a argument_n as_o those_o two_o now_o mention_v and_o so_o not_o to_o forfeit_v the_o credit_n of_o his_o subtlety_n turn_v to_o protest_v with_o his_o accustom_a ingenuity_n that_o he_o follow_v this_o opinion_n only_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n conclude_v thus_o &_o hoc_fw-la principaliter_fw-la teneo_fw-la propter_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o the_o same_o his_o scholiast_n declare_v of_o he_o upon_o the_o foresay_a word_n say_v tenet_n doctor_n tertiam_fw-la sententiam_fw-la nempè_fw-la panem_fw-la converti_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la quia_fw-la sic_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la tenet_fw-la 1639._o tenet_fw-la edit_fw-la lugdun_fw-la a_o 1639._o vid._n scot._n in_o 4._o do_v 10._o q._n 3._o scotus_n hold_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v convert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o church_n declare_v it_o so_o in_o the_o lateran_n council_n not_o for_o any_o authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o reason_n which_o can_v move_v he_o to_o it_o the_o same_o i_o may_v easy_o prove_v of_o other_o learned_a schoolman_n by_o this_o you_o may_v see_v mr._n i._n s._n his_o rashness_n in_o say_v i_o do_v most_o false_o impose_v upon_o scotus_n what_o both_o bellarmin_n and_o himself_o declare_v to_o be_v his_o proper_a opinion_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o scotus_n be_v durandus_fw-la in_o 4._o sent._n do_v 11._o q._n 1._o sect_n propter_fw-la 3._o where_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o opinion_n affirm_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o remain_v after_o consecration_n be_v more_o convenient_a to_o obviate_v
difficulty_n render_v the_o mystery_n more_o hard_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o that_o the_o contrary_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n cajetan_n say_v that_o only_o the_o say_a declaration_n can_v make_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n allege_v for_o transubstantiation_n appear_v convince_a to_o that_o purpose_n and_o suarez_n tell_v we_o his_o say_n be_v command_v by_o pope_n pius_n the_o v._o to_o be_v expunge_v a_o old_a copy_n of_o ocham_n i_o find_v in_o dublin_n library_n be_v more_o fortunate_a in_o escape_v their_o blur_n in_o his_o 5_o quodlibet_fw-la q._n 30._o he_o relate_v three_o opinion_n touch_v the_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o first_o say_n that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v before_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n after_o consecration_n of_o which_o opinion_n he_o deliver_v this_o censure_n prima_fw-la est_fw-la irrationalis_fw-la that_o it_o be_v a_o unreasonable_a opinion_n the_o second_o opinion_n say_v he_o be_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v to_o be_v and_o only_o the_o accident_n do_v remain_v and_o under_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o this_o opinion_n he_o say_v est_fw-la communis_fw-la opinio_fw-la quam_fw-la ten●o_fw-la propter_fw-la determinationem_fw-la ecclcsiae_fw-la &_o non_fw-fr prope_a aliam_fw-la rationem_fw-la that_o to_o this_o opinion_n he_o consem_v for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n in_o favour_n of_o it_o and_o not_o for_o any_o reason_n assist_v it_o the_o three_o opinion_n relate_v by_o he_o be_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o consecration_n and_o of_o this_o he_o say_v tertia_fw-la opinio_fw-la esset_fw-la multum_fw-la rationabilis_fw-la nisi_fw-la esset_fw-la determinatio_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o contrarium_fw-la that_o this_o opinion_n be_v very_o rational_a if_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o reason_n nor_o any_o ground_n they_o see_v for_o it_o in_o scripture_n make_v these_o and_o many_o other_o very_o learned_a man_n consent_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n but_o only_o a_o blind_a obedience_n to_o innocent_n decree_v in_o the_o lateran_n council_n bellarmin_n wish_v we_o shall_v all_o have_v this_o submission_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o both_o we_o and_o he_o and_o his_o party_n and_o all_o christian_n shall_v have_v due_a submission_n to_o the_o church_n true_o catholic_n primitive_a and_o apostolic_a declare_v to_o we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o universal_a tradition_n in_o which_o fountain_n of_o truth_n neither_o transubstantiation_n will_v be_v find_v nor_o any_o of_o their_o error_n which_o i_o point_v out_o for_o motive_n of_o my_o forsake_v their_o communion_n neither_o be_v i_o s._n more_o fortunate_a in_o his_o attemt_fw-mi of_o put_v a_o terror_n upon_o i_o as_o if_o i_o have_v shock_a the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o say_v its_o rashness_n to_o give_v divine_a adoration_n to_o a_o wafer_n wherein_o they_o can_v be_v sure_a christ_n to_o be_v present_a this_o depend_v according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n upon_o the_o priest_n intention_n to_o consecrate_v his_o due_a ordination_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n that_o give_v he_o order_n his_o intention_n and_o due_a ordination_n and_o so_o upward_o of_o endless_a requisite_n impossible_a to_o be_v certain_o know_v and_o what_o have_v all_o this_o to_o do_v with_o shock_v the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o the_o church_n of_o england_n when_o i_o see_v the_o man_n begin_v with_o so_o great_a a_o clap_n and_o sound_v already_o a_o triumph_n i_o expect_v the_o story_n of_o the_o nagshead_n or_o some_o other_o of_o their_o old_a engine_n against_o the_o legality_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n shall_v come_v down_o but_o all_o he_o bring_v be_v that_o we_o do_v also_o allow_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v essential_o requisite_a for_o the_o validity_n of_o a_o sacrament_n the_o defect_n of_o which_o nullify_v the_o sacrament_n as_o for_o baptism_n water_n be_v requisite_a and_o the_o form_n of_o word_n i_o baptize_v you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o minister_n may_v vitiate_v this_o form_n and_o utter_v somewhat_o in_o lieu_n of_o it_o or_o omit_v some_o word_n of_o it_o or_o add_v some_o other_o that_o will_v destroy_v the_o form_n the_o same_o may_v happen_v in_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o minister_n or_o bishop_n and_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n that_o no_o error_n of_o these_o shall_v have_v happen_v in_o any_o one_o of_o the_o whole_a train_n of_o our_o ordainer_n and_o if_o it_o be_v want_v in_o any_o all_o the_o ordination_n derive_v from_o he_o be_v null_a therefore_o we_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o our_o hierarchy_n i_o leave_v the_o judicious_a reader_n to_o see_v what_o singular_a exploit_n this_o man_n have_v do_v herein_o against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n his_o reason_n allege_v of_o doubt_v the_o legality_n of_o its_o minister_n do_v prove_v so_o much_o for_o render_v doubtful_a the_o legality_n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n but_o much_o more_o for_o what_o i_o be_o to_o add_v first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o make_v the_o effect_n of_o sacrament_n to_o depend_v so_o much_o upon_o the_o intention_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o minister_n as_o papist_n do_v we_o entertain_v a_o better_a opinion_n of_o god_n goodness_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v pious_a soul_n lose_v the_o fruit_n of_o their_o sincere_a endeavour_n and_o will_v supply_v to_o that_o effect_n the_o defect_n of_o the_o minister_n second_o that_o their_o practice_n of_o mutter_v the_o word_n in_o a_o language_n unknown_a to_o the_o people_n and_o in_o a_o voice_n not_o audible_a especial_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v more_o subject_a to_o error_n and_o fraud_n than_o the_o way_n of_o our_o church_n where_o the_o minister_n be_v to_o pronounce_v loud_o and_o intelligible_o the_o word_n of_o the_o form_n but_o chief_o touch_v the_o subject_n of_o our_o present_a discourse_n from_o which_o our_o adversary_n seem_v willing_a to_o divert_v i_o mean_v the_o use_n and_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n who_o run_v more_o hazard_v the_o papist_n or_o we_o in_o case_n a_o defect_n shall_v happen_v touch_v the_o consecration_n we_o enjoy_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o spiritual_a communion_n and_o be_v not_o at_o the_o loss_n that_o papist_n be_v in_o the_o like_a case_n who_o make_v the_o main_a fruit_n depend_v upon_o the_o real_a and_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o host_n we_o run_v no_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n material_a or_o formal_a give_v the_o worship_n of_o divinity_n to_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o god_n as_o papist_n do_v give_v that_o kind_n of_o worship_n to_o any_o host_n repute_v to_o be_v due_o consecrate_v which_o if_o it_o happen_v not_o to_o be_v so_o indeed_o their_o act_n of_o worship_n be_v at_o least_o a_o material_a idolatry_n in_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o to_o expose_v themselves_o to_o a_o know_a danger_n of_o commit_v such_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n can_v choose_v but_o be_v criminal_a as_o it_o be_v general_o repute_v to_o be_v a_o sin_n for_o one_o to_o expose_v himself_o to_o a_o danger_n of_o commit_v a_o sin_n the_o parity_n of_o one_o honour_v his_o father_n not_o know_v certain_o he_o to_o be_v his_o true_a father_n be_v impertinent_a and_o undecent_a a_o bad_a opinion_n he_o must_v have_v of_o his_o mother_n who_o doubt_v his_o repute_a father_n to_o be_v such_o in_o truth_n but_o what_o if_o he_o be_v in_o a_o material_a error_n it_o be_v not_o a_o sin_n but_o a_o duty_n to_o pay_v respect_n unto_o he_o that_o adopt_v or_o own_v he_o for_o a_o son_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o matter_n with_o let_v mr._n i._o s._n see_v his_o rashness_n in_o pretend_v i_o be_v rash_a in_o say_v its_o intolerable_a boldness_n in_o some_o of_o his_o fellow_n to_o say_v there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n as_o for_o adore_v christ_n divinity_n and_o he_o pretend_v i_o shall_v seem_v thereby_o not_o to_o understand_v their_o doctrine_n sir_n i_o be_o not_o to_o enter_v with_o you_o in_o comparison_n which_o of_o we_o understand_v better_a the_o doctrine_n of_o both_o church_n what_o i_o see_v evident_o be_v that_o either_o you_o do_v ignorant_o misunderstand_v or_o malicious_o misrepresent_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n that_o want_v a_o answer_n to_o my_o argument_n in_o their_o proper_a term_n you_o may_v fashion_v they_o so_o as_o your_o impertinent_a discourse_n may_v seem_v to_o strike_v at_o something_o which_o be_v proper_o hostem_fw-la tibi_fw-la
he_o and_o other_o immediate_o follow_v wherein_o he_o attribute_n the_o same_o opinion_n to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sessione_n 25._o in_o decret_a fdei_fw-la de_fw-la sacris_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la and_o to_o the_o seven_o synod_n vasquez_n lib._n 2._o the_o adoratione_n disp_n 6._o cap._n 2._o give_v this_o further_a account_n of_o the_o mode_n of_o worship_v image_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n catholica_fw-la veritas_fw-la est_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la deferendam_fw-la esse_fw-la adorationem_fw-la h._n e._n signa_fw-la servitutis_fw-la &_o submissionis_fw-la amplexu_fw-la luminaribus_fw-la oblatione_fw-la suffituum_fw-la capitis_fw-la nudatione_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o it_o be_v a_o catholic_a verity_n that_o worship_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o image_n that_o be_v to_o say_v expression_n of_o service_n and_o submission_n by_o embrace_n light_z burning_z offer_v of_o incense_n uncover_v the_o head_n azorius_fw-la quote_v for_o the_o same_o opinion_n aquinas_n bonaventure_n alensis_n cajetan_n and_o several_a other_o ancient_a and_o modern_a schoolman_n mr._n i._o s._n will_v not_o have_v we_o believe_v all_o these_o doctor_n in_o this_o their_o declaration_n touch_v the_o romish_a worship_n of_o image_n but_o who_o be_v you_o good_a mr._n i._o s._n quidam_fw-la nescio_fw-la quis_fw-la nec_fw-la puto_fw-la nomen_fw-la habet_fw-la one_o i_o know_v not_o who_o and_o as_o i_o see_v nameless_a that_o we_o must_v believe_v you_o rather_o than_o so_o many_o famous_a doctor_n now_o mention_v give_v to_o your_o worship_n of_o image_n what_o name_v you_o please_v to_o worship_v they_o at_o all_o be_v a_o formal_a transgression_n of_o the_o divine_a precept_n above_o mention_v and_o therefore_o a_o grievous_a fin_n you_o will_v fain_o prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o god_n order_v image_n to_o be_v adore_v which_o be_v to_o pretend_v that_o god_n shall_v contradict_v himself_o and_o so_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o ill_a success_n of_o your_o attempt_n upon_o find_v your_o doctrine_n in_o scripture_n your_o first_o discovery_n in_o scripture_n be_v that_o god_n command_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n to_o be_v put_v up_o to_o be_v adore_v say_v you_o god_n command_n touch_v that_o matter_n be_v set_v down_o numb_a xxiv_o 8._o in_o these_o word_n make_v thou_o a_o fiery_a serpent_n and_o set_v it_o upon_o a_o pole_n and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o every_o one_o that_o be_v bite_v when_o he_o look_v upon_o it_o shall_v live_v here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o adore_v that_o serpent_n you_o say_v that_o look_n upon_o it_o be_v to_o be_v with_o inward_a reverence_n and_o veneration_n wherein_o adoration_n or_o worship_n do_v proper_o consist_v then_o when_o we_o look_v upon_o a_o church_n with_o reverence_n as_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n we_o adore_v it_o the_o same_z when_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o bible_n when_o a_o dutiful_a child_n look_v reverent_o upon_o his_o father_n all_o be_v adore_v likely_a the_o israelite_n in_o time_n come_v to_o be_v of_o your_o opinion_n and_o to_o adore_v the_o serpent_n but_o how_o well_o be_v that_o take_v at_o their_o hand_n you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o second_o of_o king_n xviii_o 4._o that_o the_o godly_a king_n ezechias_n break_v in_o piece_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n that_o moses_n have_v make_v for_o unto_o those_o day_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v burn_v ineense_n to_o it_o while_o they_o only_o look_v upon_o it_o according_a to_o god_n ordinance_n it_o be_v beneficial_a to_o they_o but_o when_o their_o devotion_n grow_v to_o a_o worship_n it_o provoke_v god_n indignation_n declare_v in_o that_o action_n of_o ezechias_n which_o the_o sacred_a writer_n approve_v in_o these_o word_n and_o he_o do_v that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n your_o second_o discovery_n be_v josue_n vii_o 6._o where_o only_o we_o find_v that_o josue_n together_o with_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n fall_v upon_o their_o face_n before_o the_o ark_n and_o pray_v to_o god_n and_o that_o you_o take_v for_o a_o adoration_n of_o the_o ark._n so_o whensoever_o you_o pray_v before_o a_o altar_n or_o a_o bible_n you_o adore_v the_o altar_n and_o the_o bible_n the_o three_o instance_n to_o which_o you_o say_v protestant_n will_v never_o answer_v be_v that_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v a_o representation_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o be_v religious_o worship_v by_o they_o if_o they_o do_v what_o st._n paul_n require_v 1_o cor._n xi_o 28._o and_o what_o do_v st._n paul_n require_v in_o that_o place_n this_o let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o that_o cup._n that_o protestant_n shall_v never_o answer_v this_o argument_n be_v no_o wonder_n what_o answer_n can_v be_v where_o no_o question_n be_v and_o questionless_a there_o be_v no_o sign_n or_o the_o least_o insinuation_n of_o adoration_n to_o be_v pay_v unto_o the_o communion_n bread_n in_o the_o place_n you_o quote_v it_o be_v a_o work_n of_o your_o fancy_n no_o discovery_n of_o common_a sense_n to_o imagine_v worship_n give_v by_o god_n ordinance_n to_o the_o serpent_n to_o the_o ark_n or_o to_o the_o communion_n bread_n in_o the_o place_n you_o relate_v you_o be_v to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o tell_v you_o that_o your_o argument_n be_v so_o frivolous_a as_o require_v no_o more_o serious_a answer_n then_o to_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o spanish_a proverb_n quien_v vaccas_fw-la have_v perdido_fw-es cencerrosse_v le_fw-fr antexan_n who_o have_v lose_v his_o ox_n bell_n do_v ring_n in_o his_o car_n his_o vehement_a desire_n of_o find_v his_o ox_n make_v he_o think_v every_o noise_n of_o a_o bough_n or_o leaf_n of_o a_o tree_n stir_v be_v the_o wind_n to_o be_v the_o sound_n of_o the_o bell_n his_o ox_n bare_a so_o your_o strong_a fancy_n for_o image-worship_n make_v you_o conceive_v it_o even_o where_o no_o shape_n nor_o sound_n of_o it_o appear_v you_o confess_v image_n be_v little_o use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n nay_o be_v absolute_o prohibit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n but_o that_o be_v say_v you_o to_o avoid_v the_o scandal_n of_o pagan_n and_o the_o relapse_n of_o those_o convert_v from_o paganism_n and_o be_v there_o not_o pagan_n yet_o in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o a_o conversion_n of_o they_o still_o procure_v what_o consequence_n be_v it_o to_o decry_v their_o adoration_n of_o stock_n and_o stone_n and_o when_o they_o come_v to_o your_o church_n to_o see_v you_o perform_v to_o image_n all_o those_o act_n of_o worship_n which_o they_o use_v to_o their_o idol_n by_o genuflexion_n thurification_n etc._n etc._n to_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o your_o distinction_n of_o terminative_a and_o relative_a worship_n will_v be_v insignificant_a as_o in_o itself_o its_o vain_a for_o the_o reasen_a i_o propose_v pag._n 70._o of_o my_o former_a discourse_n to_o which_o you_o give_v no_o answer_n i_o allege_v nicephorus_n say_v it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o make_v image_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o yet_o they_o do_v it_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o say_v that_o what_o nicephorus_n and_o other_o do_v hold_v absurd_a be_v to_o paint_v image_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o proper_a substance_n and_o nature_n nor_o do_v the_o catholic_n use_v it_o as_o you_o false_o criminate_a they_o say_v you_o to_o i_o but_o herein_o certain_o you_o do_v most_o false_o criminate_a i_o in_o say_v i_o shall_v impose_v such_o a_o thing_n upon_o they_o where_o have_v i_o say_v that_o papist_n do_v paint_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o proper_a substarce_a and_o nature_n or_o how_o can_v any_o man_n in_o his_o sense_n conceive_v image_n of_o that_o kind_n can_v be_v draw_v with_o material_a colour_n to_o attemt_a the_o draw_n of_o any_o shape_n of_o they_o be_v what_o nicephorus_n call_v absurd_a and_o medium_n and_o damascen_n l._n 4._o c._n 15._o ante_fw-la medium_n damascen_n madness_n and_o impiety_n insiplentiae_fw-la summae_fw-la est_fw-la &_o impictatis_fw-la sigurare_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la divinum_fw-la of_o this_o madness_n cajetan_n more_o ingenuous_a than_o you_o confess_v your_o church_n to_o be_v guilty_a who_o after_o have_v say_v that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n certain_o image_n of_o god_n be_v prohibit_v and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v reprehend_v as_o unlawful_a by_o several_a doctor_n among_o christian_n since_o in_o both_o occasion_n they_o may_v engender_v in_o man_n a_o false_a conception_n of_o god_n nature_n yet_o he_o conclude_v in_o these_o word_n in_o oppositum_fw-la autem_fw-la est_fw-la usus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la admittens_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la imagine_v representantes_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la silium_fw-la incarnatum_fw-la sed_fw-la patrem_fw-la &_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la that_o contrary_a to_o the_o say_a reason_n &_o authority_n of_o damascen_n the_o church_n
1._o opusc_n tract_n 8._o q._n 4._o say_v the_o foresay_a testimony_n be_v without_o doubt_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o remission_n to_o be_v give_v by_o way_n of_o sacrament_n not_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o pain_n in_o the_o other_o life_n as_o the_o pope_n do_v practice_n in_o the_o give_n of_o indulgence_n and_o final_o give_v for_o the_o only_a reason_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o pope_n leo_n then_o govern_v which_o he_o tell_v we_o must_v suffice_v though_o no_o other_o reason_n shall_v appear_v by_o these_o remarkable_a word_n absque_fw-la hasitatione_n aliquâ_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la nulla_fw-la adesset_fw-la ratio_fw-la fatendum_fw-la est_fw-la dicti_fw-la thesauri_fw-la dispensationem_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la per_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la quoad_fw-la merita_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la aliter_fw-la quam_fw-la per_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la qnoad_fw-la merita_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanctorum_fw-la commissam_fw-la esse_fw-la praelatis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o praecipuè_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la tanto_fw-la magis_fw-la fatendum_fw-la est_fw-la quanto_fw-la per_fw-la leonem_fw-la decimum_fw-la determinatum_fw-la est_fw-la we_o be_v to_o believe_v without_o stagger_v though_o no_o reason_n appear_v for_o it_o that_o the_o dispense_n of_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o by_o way_n of_o sacrament_n as_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n but_o otherwise_o then_o by_o sacrament_n as_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o saint_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o be_v confess_v because_o it_o be_v so_o determine_v by_o leo_n x._o a_o very_a special_a reason_n to_o convince_v luther_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n that_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a suarez_n tom_n 4._o in_o 3._o partem_fw-la disp_n 49._o sect_n 1._o deliver_v his_o opinion_n of_o the_o foresay_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v insufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n of_o that_o of_o joh._n 20._o he_o say_v the_o same_o that_o cajetan_a above_o mention_v of_o the_o other_o touch_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v matth._n 18.18_o he_o say_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o those_o word_n to_o be_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v by_o law_n and_o censure_n and_o of_o absolve_v from_o censure_n and_o dispense_n in_o law_n and_o final_o in_o the_o number_n 17._o of_o the_o same_o section_n he_o conclude_v there_o be_v no_o place_n in_o the_o gospel_n whence_o the_o give_v of_o this_o power_n may_v be_v conclude_v if_o it_o be_v not_o joh._n 21.16_o where_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o s._n peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n in_o which_o word_n suarez_n do_v pretend_v the_o power_n universal_a and_o supremacy_n over_o all_o the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v give_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o under_o that_o universalïty_n the_o power_n of_o indulgence_n to_o have_v be_v give_v to_o he_o but_o as_o s._n peter_n do_v never_o receive_v such_o a_o universal_a power_n over_o the_o church_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v now_o usurp_v so_o do_v he_o never_o pretend_v it_o nor_o ever_o trouble_v thomas_n in_o india_n or_o andrew_n in_o achaia_n or_o james_n in_o jerusalem_n or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o fellow-apostle_n and_o bishop_n in_o their_o respective_a province_n about_o a_o power_n over_o they_o or_o a_o dependence_n of_o they_o upon_o he_o all_z and_z ea●h_v one_o of_o they_o comply_v faithful_o with_o their_o ministry_n without_o encroach_a one_o upon_o the_o other_o nor_o stain_v the_o repute_n of_o christian_a holiness_n with_o the_o profane_a spirit_n of_o ambition_n which_o in_o rome_n do_v grow_v to_o the_o confusion_n and_o distraction_n of_o christendom_n but_o though_o such_o a_o supremacy_n will_v have_v be_v grant_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n of_o rome_n far_o must_v suarez_n go_v for_o a_o consequence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n to_o be_v infer_v from_o such_o a_o grant_n if_o the_o power_n of_o dispense_n those_o immense_a treasure_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o saint_n be_v give_v to_o s._n peter_n in_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n commend_v to_o he_o the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n how_o come_v he_o and_o the_o other_o succeed_a bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o so_o many_o age_n to_o neglect_v the_o use_n of_o this_o power_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o soul_n and_o great_a advantage_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o now_o be_v practise_v suarez_n do_v easy_o perceive_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o argument_n from_o this_o testimony_n and_o so_o betake_v himself_o in_o the_o second_o section_n follow_v to_o the_o common_a refuge_n of_o the_o use_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o use_n say_v he_o be_v not_o deny_v we_o see_v it_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o abuse_n but_o a_o lawful_a use_n be_v prove_v first_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n last_o session_n where_o be_v add_v that_o this_o use_n have_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o sacred_a council_n for_o which_o purpose_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v relate_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a can._n 11._o of_o carthage_n 4.75_o of_o neooaesarea_n ch_n 3._o of_o laodicea_n can_v 1.2_o but_o in_o these_o council_n say_v suarez_n we_o only_o find_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o bishop_n to_o remit_v some_o of_o the_o public_a penitence_n enjoin_v by_o canon_n for_o divers_a crime_n but_o that_o such_o a_o remission_n shall_v be_v extend_v to_o a_o pardon_n of_o penalty_n due_a in_o the_o tribunal_n of_o god_n may_v not_o be_v infer_v from_o those_o council_n another_o main_a argument_n for_o the_o antiquity_n of_o indulgence_n they_o fetch_v out_o of_o 2._o cor._n 2.10_o where_o s._n paul_n remit_v a_o part_n of_o the_o penalty_n due_a to_o a_o incestuous_a person_n who_o he_o have_v former_o punish_v save_v to_o who_o you_o forgive_v any_o thing_n i_o forgive_v also_o for_o if_o i_o forgive_v an●_n thing_n to_o who_o i_o forgive_v it_o for_o your_o sake_n forgive_v i_o it_o in_o the_o p●rson_n of_o christ_n from_o these_o latter_a word_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n they_o pretend_v to_o infer_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o indulgence_n now_o use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v its_o beginning_n from_o christ_n and_o that_o s._n paul_n do_v practice_v it_o in_o the_o occalion_n now_o mention_v by_o authority_n receive_v from_o christ_n this_o argument_n suarez_n propose_v in_o the_o above_o mention_v second_o section_n num_fw-la 3._o but_o from_o the_o follow_a four_o number_n to_o the_o 11._o he_o do_v most_o vigorous_o prove_v the_o inefficaciousness_n of_o that_o argument_n that_o the_o remission_n give_v by_o s._n paul_n to_o that_o incestuous_a man_n do_v only_o relate_v to_o a_o exterior_a penalty_n due_a by_o course_n or_o canon_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n not_o to_o penalty_n of_o the_o other_o life_n depend_v from_o divine_a justice_n that_o the_o word_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n only_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v a_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n or_o power_n receive_v from_o christ_n which_o may_v be_v sufficient_o verify_v by_o a_o remission_n of_o a_o exterior_a temporal_a penalty_n due_a by_o the_o common_a course_n of_o ecclesiastical_a human_a power_n and_o final_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o warrantable_a history_n or_o testimony_n extant_a by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o indulgence_n now_o use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v know_v before_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a of_o who_o he_o say_v be_v report_v that_o he_o give_v a_o plenary_a indulgence_n though_o even_o of_o this_o say_v suarez_n i_o find_v no_o write_a history_n but_o a_o public_a report_n in_o rome_n and_o other_o place_n and_o final_o what_o suarez_n say_v with_o resolution_n be_v only_o that_o this_o practice_n be_v now_o in_o use_n in_o the_o church_n so_o as_o they_o be_v repute_v heretic_n who_o reprehend_v such_o a_o custom_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o universal_a church_n shall_v err_v herein_o for_o it_o be_v say_v he_o a_o intolerable_a moral_a error_n in_o practice_n if_o the_o universal_a church_n indeed_o do_v practice_v now_o and_o always_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o in_o all_o place_n this_o custom_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o apostolic_a lawful_a tradition_n deliver_v by_o lyrinensis_n and_o s._n augustin_n l._n 4._o de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la cap._n 24._o we_o will_v look_v upon_o this_o argument_n as_o of_o force_n but_o suarez_n himself_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o confess_v that_o this_o practice_n be_v neither_o so_o ancient_a nor_o universal_a and_o therefore_o it_o may_v not_o be_v take_v for_o apostolic_a tradition_n but_o rank_v among_o the_o modern_a institution_n of_o the_o present_a romish_a church_n to_o stand_v or_o fall_v
other_o with_o a_o contemt_fw-mi of_o the_o earth_n soon_o after_o he_o say_v i_o shall_v have_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n without_o tell_v where_o or_o when_o i_o do_v deliver_v such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o indeed_o he_o can_v not_o do_v i_o profess_v every_o day_n my_o belief_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o protest_v i_o do_v and_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o it_o if_o by_o catholic_a church_n he_o mean_v only_o the_o popish_a or_o roman_n it_o be_v a_o foul_a abuse_n of_o term_n especial_o speak_v to_o the_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n or_o to_o any_o other_o of_o sense_n in_o a_o polemic_a discourse_n and_o even_o speak_v of_o the_o roman_a or_o popish_a church_n it_o be_v another_o great_a piece_n of_o untruth_n to_o say_v i_o shall_v have_v teach_v that_o none_o may_v be_v save_v in_o it_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n it_o be_v another_o wilful_a or_o rude_a mistake_n whereinto_o he_o fall_v very_o often_o that_o by_o roman_a church_n i_o shall_v understand_v the_o diocese_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o i_o never_o take_v any_o notice_n or_o regard_n in_o my_o discourse_n which_o be_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o reform_a and_o so_o contain_v the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o man_n subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o it_o be_v to_o i_o a_o wonder_n that_o this_o great_a pretender_n to_o skill_n in_o controversy_n shall_v not_o know_v before_o now_o that_o to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o controversy_n of_o this_o kind_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o his_o pitiful_a spite_n and_o envy_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n pretend_v to_o rob_v i_o of_o those_o title_n my_o employment_n give_v i_o so_o public_a and_o know_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o of_o this_o treatise_n without_o shame_n to_o be_v convince_v of_o palpable_a untruth_n what_o of_o his_o rashness_n and_o rudeness_n in_o fix_v for_o a_o thesis_n or_o title_n to_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o tenet_n of_o his_o prosane_a policy_n in_o accuse_v i_o of_o indiscretion_n in_o deliver_v what_o i_o know_v to_o be_v truth_n touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o protestant_n when_o i_o be_v on_o the_o romish_a side_n as_o mention_v in_o the_o fourteen_o chapter_n what_o of_o his_o blasphemous_a impiety_n in_o say_v that_o no_o text_n of_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o evangelist_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n when_o they_o write_v the_o gospel_n nor_o nothing_o else_o give_v we_o assurance_n of_o it_o nay_o further_a against_o the_o gospel_n itself_o he_o pronounce_v this_o horrible_a blasphemy_n that_o not_o only_o we_o be_v unsure_a of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o that_o we_o be_v assure_v it_o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o this_o hellish_a conception_n of_o his_o own_o he_o must_v father_n upon_o the_o protestant_a church_n say_v it_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v god_n commandment_n the_o falsehood_n of_o which_o malicious_a imposture_n i_o have_v declare_v above_o in_o the_o 8_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n what_o of_o his_o boldness_n in_o challenge_v i_o and_o all_o protestant_n to_o answer_v his_o ridiculous_a and_o silly_a sophism_n with_o undertake_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v answer_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o eighteen_o chapter_n touch_v transubstantiation_n and_o in_o the_o twenty_o sixth_o touch_v purgatory_n in_o deny_v that_o scotus_n ocham_n and_o other_o schoolman_n shall_v declare_v transubstantiation_n not_o to_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n as_o above_o declare_v chap._n 20._o as_o a_o so_o in_o deny_v that_o costerus_n shall_v say_v it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o romish_a divine_n that_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v by_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n as_o above_o mention_v ch._n 23._o what_o of_o his_o terrible_a hallucination_n in_o matter_n of_o history_n touch_v indulgence_n declare_v in_o chapt._n 29._o appear_v in_o every_o word_n ridiculous_o mistake_v when_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v most_o magisterial_a in_o correct_v mistake_n of_o his_o adversary_n and_o carry_v on_o constant_o to_o the_o end_n this_o spirit_n of_o untruth_n hallucination_n and_o impropriety_n of_o term_n he_o conclude_v his_o book_n with_o tell_v i_o i_o know_v in_o my_o conscience_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o the_o error_n i_o attribute_v to_o she_o for_o cause_n of_o my_o separation_n from_o she_o how_o come_v you_o sr_n to_o know_v the_o interior_a state_n of_o my_o conscience_n you_o tell_v i_o i_o know_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o temporal_a affair_n over_o prince_n be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o a_o school_n question_n that_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n be_v but_o a_o opinion_n of_o some_o divine_n as_o to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n i_o have_v declare_v above_o c._n 25._o what_o little_a comfort_n be_v leave_v to_o prince_n by_o that_o distinction_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n from_o that_o of_o his_o power_n in_o temporal_n whereas_o he_o back_v his_o spiritual_a power_n with_o a_o temporal_a to_o the_o ruin_n and_o depose_n of_o all_o prince_n and_o emperor_n that_o resist_v he_o the_o only_a case_n of_o furious_a hildebrand_n with_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o 3_o as_o relate_v by_o his_o own_o most_o friendly_a historian_n even_o baronius_n be_v apt_a to_o strike_v a_o horror_n into_o any_o human_a heart_n and_o a_o terror_n into_o prince_n and_o people_n if_o the_o unspeakable_a arrogance_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n shall_v not_o be_v bridle_v as_o for_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n i_o have_v declare_v above_o in_o the_o 3_o chapter_n how_o impertinent_a your_o distinction_n of_o pope_n alone_o from_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n together_o be_v to_o escape_v the_o force_n of_o my_o argument_n in_o the_o present_a controversy_n how_o false_o you_o say_v i_o shall_v speak_v only_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n alone_o my_o argument_n prove_v he_o be_v fallible_a still_o whether_o alone_o or_o in_o a_o council_n depend_v upon_o he_o as_o that_o of_o trent_n you_o tell_v i_o i_o leave_v the_o roman_a church_n because_o i_o see_v the_o bible_n prohibit_v in_o it_o to_o the_o people_n and_o the_o liturgy_n perform_v in_o a_o unknown_a language_n but_o though_o that_o be_v a_o great_a crime_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n it_o be_v not_o the_o only_a cause_n other_o several_z grievous_a i_o produce_v more_o immediate_o touch_v my_o own_o concern_n and_o daily_o practice_v wherein_o i_o can_v not_o continue_v with_o quiet_a or_o safety_n of_o conscience_n you_o tell_v i_o i_o forsake_v a_o church_n honour_v with_o many_o saint_n for_o the_o protestant_a church_n whereof_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o saint_n if_o this_o be_v true_a s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v no_o saint_n for_o i_o be_o certain_o persuade_v they_o be_v of_o the_o church_n that_o i_o be_o of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o their_o faith_n and_o no_o other_o be_v teach_v in_o it_o but_o you_o speak_v with_o the_o vulgar_a of_o protestant_n as_o condistinct_a from_o roman_a catholic_o well_o and_o how_o come_v you_o to_o know_v that_o none_o of_o they_o be_v ever_o a_o saint_n be_v you_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o or_o do_v you_o sit_v in_o the_o tribunal_n of_o god_n to_o know_v what_o degree_n of_o grace_n they_o have_v in_o his_o sovereign_a inscrutable_a judgement_n what_o be_v rashness_n if_o this_o be_v not_o but_o you_o have_v titular_a saint_n who_o have_v purchase_v that_o call_n by_o public_a authority_n as_o duke_n earls_z and_o knight_n do_v purchase_v they_o of_o such_o we_o have_v none_o then_o you_o speak_v of_o titular_a saint_n not_o of_o real_a one_o and_o upon_o this_o account_n you_o may_v not_o expect_v to_o win_v i_o from_o the_o protestant_a church_n to_o you_o i_o hear_v of_o some_o sectary_n about_o we_o i_o know_v not_o where_o who_o style_v all_o of_o their_o congregation_n saint_n to_o this_o degree_n of_o sanctity_n your_o church_n do_v not_o aspire_v yet_o then_o if_o i_o be_o to_o remove_v to_o a_o church_n of_o more_o titular_a saint_n to_o these_o sectary_n i_o be_o to_o go_v not_o to_o you_o but_o you_o speak_v of_o saint_n that_o come_v to_o heaven_n and_o thither_o none_o may_v come_v but_o under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n he_o have_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o none_o may_v go_v